Selected quad for the lemma: heart_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heart_n according_a day_n lord_n 2,705 5 3.6449 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A75460 The comfort of the soul laid down by way of meditation upon some heads of Christian religion, very profitable for every true Christian. Composed and written by Iohn Anthony of London Doctor of Physick. Anthony, John, 1585-1655. 1654 (1654) Wing A3479; Thomason E739_1; ESTC R207006 271,347 376

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

life_n which_o do_v embitter_v all_o our_o comfort_n here_o but_o when_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v this_o heavenly_a paradise_n 13._o paradise_n rev._n 14._o 13._o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o we_o shall_v rest_v from_o our_o labour_n and_o we_o shall_v feel_v no_o more_o sorrow_n our_o body_n shall_v sleep_v in_o the_o dust_n until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n but_o our_o soul_n shall_v rest_v in_o joy_n and_o happiness_n for_o evermore_o though_o we_o live_v a_o restless_a and_o uncomfortable_a life_n in_o this_o world_n it_o will_v be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o felicity_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o his_o holy_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint●_n in_o heaven_n which_o never_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n consider_v also_o that_o christ_n do_v present_o grant_v his_o request_n and_o do_v sudden_o perform_v his_o promise_n for_o god_n do_v sometime_o answer_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n before_o we_o speak_v and_o he_o will_v give_v what_o we_o need_v before_o we_o ask_v when_o daniel_n pray_v for_o the_o restauration_n of_o jerusalem_n god_n answer_v he_o before_o he_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o prayer_n 21_o prayer_n dan._n 9_o 21_o and_o cause_v his_o angel_n gabriel_n to_o fly_v swift_o to_o touch_v he_o and_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o time_n when_o jerusasalem_n shall_v be_v restore_v but_o sometime_o it_o be_v long_o before_o we_o have_v a_o return_n of_o our_o prayer_n because_o god_n will_v try_v our_o patience_n and_o constancy_n in_o wait_v his_o good_a pleasure_n and_o by_o his_o delay_n to_o make_v we_o more_o fervent_a in_o our_o supplication_n for_o he_o love_v a_o holy_a importunity_n 12._o importunity_n 1_o sam._n 1._o 12._o hannah_n continue_v long_o before_o the_o lord_n in_o pray_v for_o a_o child_n before_o she_o obtain_v her_o request_n also_o god_n do_v sometime_o long_o delay_v the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n to_o try_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o as_o he_o do_v to_o abraham_n for_o diverse_a year_n before_o he_o give_v he_o a_o child_n by_o sarah_n his_o wife_n and_o also_o before_o he_o deliver_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n wherefore_o faint_v not_o in_o thy_o prayer_n for_o what_o thou_o desire_v neither_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n if_o thou_o have_v a_o promise_n from_o god_n but_o rest_n upon_o it_o with_o a_o assure_a hope_n for_o he_o will_v choose_v the_o fit_a time_n to_o answer_v th●_n prayer_n and_o to_o perform_v his_o promise_n which_o may_v most_o advance_v his_o own_o glory_n and_o be_v best_a for_o thy_o good_a of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n now_o do_v the_o sorrow_n of_o this_o bless_a virgin_n begin_v when_o she_o see_v she_o dear_o belove_a son_n in_o this_o lamentable_a condition_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o hear_v the_o blasphemy_n and_o reproach_n both_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n she_o see_v how_o the_o barbarous_a people_n do_v insult_v over_o he_o and_o what_o cruel_a torman_n be_v inflict_v upon_o every_o part_n of_o his_o body_n and_o that_o he_o be_v now_o ready_a in_o this_o extremity_n of_o misery_n to_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n 35._o ghost_n luk._n 2._o 34._o 35._o now_o be_v old_a simeon_n prophesy_v fulfil_v now_o do_v a_o sword_n pierce_v through_o her_o soul_n 14._o soul_n isa_n 8._o 14._o he_o be_v now_o set_v for_o the_o fall_n and_o rise_v again_o of_o many_o in_o israel_n and_o for_o a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v against_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o strengthen_v her_o faith_n she_o have_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o too_o much_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n for_o her_o tender_a heart_n can_v not_o indu●e_v to_o see_v the_o barbarous_a inhumanity_n and_o savage_a cruelty_n that_o her_o dear_a son_n suffer_v who_o she_o know_v to_o be_v innocent_a and_o just_a and_o free_a from_o any_o offence_n for_o no_o doubt_n christ_n have_v former_o reveal_v to_o she_o 34._o she_o mar._n 10._o 33_o 34._o as_o he_o do_v to_o his_o disciple_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o it_o be_v so_o decree_v by_o god_n his_o father_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n that_o their_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o may_v be_v strengthen_v also_o that_o god_n send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n for_o this_o very_a end_n and_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v work_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o his_o elect_n by_o his_o death_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a virgin_n may_v be_v the_o better_o arm_v to_o bear_v her_o great_a affliction_n at_o this_o time_n she_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n though_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o her_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v whatsoewer_n shall_v be_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n she_o be_v also_o full_o persuade_v that_o though_o they_o do_v kill_v he_o yet_o he_o will_v rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o his_o own_o word_n in_o conquest_n and_o triumph_n over_o all_o his_o enemy_n maugre_o all_o their_o power_n and_o policy_n to_o prevent_v i●_n the_o bless_a virgin_n do_v ponder_v these_o thing_n in_o her_o mind_n she_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o her_o heart_n and_o do_v faithful_o believe_v they_o which_o do_v much_o sweeten_v her_o sorrow_n and_o mitigate_v the_o anguish_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o hereby_o she_o do_v bear_v her_o affliction_n with_o the_o more_o content_a patience_n thus_o will_v christ_n arm_v his_o servant_n with_o christian_a fortitude_n and_o will_v furnish_v they_o with_o spiritual_a ability_n when_o they_o be_v to_o encounter_v with_o any_o hard_a trial_n and_o he_o will_v give_v they_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o their_o encouragement_n when_o they_o suffer_v any_o sorrow_n or_o affliction_n for_o his_o sake_n for_o they_o be_v all_o as_o dear_a unto_o he_o as_o his_o mother_n be_v wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n or_o put_v upon_o any_o service_n which_o be_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n we_o must_v look_v upon_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n and_o upon_o his_o goodness_n and_o tender_a love_n to_o all_o his_o servant_n and_o also_o upon_o god_n eternal_a decree_n and_o wise_a providence_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v impose_v upon_o we_o but_o what_o be_v preordain_v &_o foresee_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o then_o christ_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n will_v fit_v we_o for_o it_o and_o if_o it_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o we_o to_o undergo_v he_o will_v direct_v and_o assist_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n in_o it_o also_o if_o the_o burden_n be_v too_o heavy_a for_o our_o strength_n to_o bear_v he_o will_v either_o lessen_v the_o burden_n or_o increase_v our_o strength_n or_o else_o he_o will_v act_v the_o part_n of_o the_o cyrenian_a and_o take_v it_o off_o from_o we_o in_o his_o good_a time_n the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n can_v claim_v no_o privilege_n from_o cross_n sorrow_n and_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n for_o they_o must_v pass_v through_o many_o tribulation_n before_o they_o come_v to_o their_o eternal_a rest_n in_o heaven_n god_n have_v many_o gracious_a end_n in_o suffer_v his_o servant_n to_o be_v tempt_v to_o be_v try_v to_o be_v buffet_v and_o afflict_v and_o whatsoever_o the_o instrument_n which_o he_o use_v do_v intend_v against_o they_o yet_o he_o will_v frustrate_v their_o wicked_a design_n and_o will_v effect_v his_o own_o work_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o their_o good_a 9_o good_a ●_o cor._n 12_o ●_o ●_o 9_o paul_n have_v his_o temptation_n and_o his_o buffet_n by_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o revelation_n and_o to_o manifest_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o his_o weakness_n and_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o christ_n in_o sustain_v he_o in_o his_o suffering_n how_o strange_o be_v abraham_n faith_n and_o job_n patience_n try_v how_o be_v god_n glorify_v thereby_o and_o how_o be_v they_o reward_v for_o their_o obedience_n and_o constancy_n what_o affliction_n do_v the_o israelite_n suffer_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v but_o the_o correction_n of_o a_o love_a father_n to_o a_o stiffnecked_a son_n for_o thus_o say_v moses_n to_o they_o 5_o they_o deut._n 8._o 5_o thou_o shall_v also_o consider_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o as_o a_o man_n chasten_v his_o son_n so_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n chasten_v thou_o holy_a david_n do_v often_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o god_n rod_n and_o he_o find_v much_o good_a and_o comfort_n by_o it_o 6●_n it_o psal_n 119
inheritance_n hereafter_o four_o when_o death_n come_v near_o to_o we_o we_o have_v most_o need_v of_o the_o best_a comfort_n both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o strong_o encounter_v with_o this_o terrible_a enemy_n in_o the_o dissolution_n of_o our_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n but_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n have_v sour_a vinegar_n give_v he_o which_o can_v no_o way_n comfort_v he_o but_o rather_o aggravate_v his_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n when_o he_o be_v every_o way_n in_o great_a extremity_n this_o do_v fit_o resemble_v the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n for_o they_o be_v often_o trouble_v and_o perplex_v with_o many_o fear_n doubt_n temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o single_a combat_n with_o death_n itself_o for_o than_o he_o will_v lay_v their_o sin_n before_o they_o with_o all_o the_o aggravation_n that_o may_v be_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o hide_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n from_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o hope_n or_o comfort_n to_o support_v they_o in_o this_o great_a conflict_n which_o do_v put_v they_o into_o trouble_n of_o mind_n grief_n of_o heart_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v more_o uncomfortable_a and_o unpleasing_a to_o their_o spiritual_a taste_n than_o any_o vinegar_n can_v be_v to_o the_o palate_n then_o be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v most_o malicious_o bend_v against_o they_o than_o do_v he_o bestir_v himself_o to_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o disquiet_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o they_o in_o christ_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o comfortable_o resign_v up_o their_o soul_n unto_o god_n he_o will_v affright_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n with_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n with_o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o their_o infidelity_n and_o unbelief_n he_o will_v labour_v to_o keep_v the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n from_o they_o or_o else_o to_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o that_o so_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n also_o he_o will_v terrify_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o drive_v they_o into_o despair_n but_o here_o be_v comfort_n for_o a_o poor_a sinner_n that_o it_o be_v thus_o assault_v by_o the_o devil_n when_o he_o be_v near_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v all_o these_o sorrow_n and_o conflict_n to_o he_o and_o he_o will_v confirm_v his_o faith_n and_o establish_v his_o hope_n upon_o his_o true_a humiliation_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o then_o those_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v vanish_v away_o for_o he_o know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v such_o temptation_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o of_o body_n be_v such_o that_o we_o can_v withstand_v such_o strong_a assault_n and_o therefore_o christ_n will_v give_v most_o strength_n to_o our_o inward_a man_n when_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v most_o weak_a and_o he_o will_v most_o weaken_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o his_o malice_n be_v strong_a to_o do_v we_o hurt_v and_o though_o we_o may_v be_v dangerous_o foil_v in_o these_o spiritual_a combat_n yet_o christ_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a consolation_n and_o will_v speak_v peace_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n when_o through_o weakness_n of_o body_n we_o can_v express_v the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o it_o five_o before_o we_o can_v willing_o leave_v this_o world_n we_o must_v be_v well_o persuade_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o better_a habitation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v which_o holy_a persuasion_n that_o we_o may_v have_v we_o must_v serious_o consider_v how_o we_o have_v do_v the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o how_o we_o have_v improve_v the_o talon_n that_o he_o have_v lend_v we_o how_o we_o have_v glorify_v god_n in_o our_o call_n and_o what_o good_a we_o have_v do_v to_o our_o neighbour_n according_a to_o the_o mean_n and_o ability_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o our_o work_n wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v true_o say_v that_o we_o have_v do_v god_n work_n to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n &_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o that_o we_o have_v well_o improve_v our_o time_n and_o our_o talon_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n than_o we_o may_v say_v with_o christ_n it_o be_v finish_v and_o with_o paul_n 8_o paul_n 2_o tim._n 7._o 8_o i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n and_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n henceforth_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v and_o though_o our_o work_n have_v be_v very_o imperfect_o do_v by_o we_o yet_o christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v make_v it_o perfect_a by_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o in_o our_o nature_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o for_o his_o sake_n then_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n to_o god_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n six_o christ_n do_v here_o teach_v we_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n we_o receive_v they_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o resign_v they_o up_o again_o unto_o he_o he_o breathe_v into_o we_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o be_v our_o chief_a and_o most_o precious_a jewel_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v it_o holy_a and_o undefiled_a for_o he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v for_o it_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o deliver_v it_o up_o to_o himself_o for_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a watch_v for_o it_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n and_o none_o can_v keep_v it_o from_o he_o but_o only_a god_n wherefore_o we_o must_v keep_v our_o soul_n so_o pure_a and_o clean_a that_o god_n may_v accept_v they_o and_o take_v they_o into_o his_o charge_n for_o if_o we_o present_v unto_o he_o a_o filthy_a soul_n pollute_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v take_v care_n of_o it_o and_o keep_v it_o unto_o the_o general_a resurrection_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v study_v and_o labour_n to_o keep_v our_o soul_n clean_o from_o sin_n by_o wash_v they_o daily_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v stain_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o day_n we_o shall_v thus_o cleanse_v they_o at_o night_n before_o we_o sleep_v and_o if_o they_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o pollution_n of_o the_o night_n ●_o we_o must_v not_o forget_v to_o wash_v they_o with_o the_o tear_n sigh_n and_o groan_n that_o flow_v from_o a_o sorrowful_a and_o contrite_a heart_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o we_o set_v about_o our_o necessary_a occasion_n in_o our_o call_n that_o we_o may_v comfortable_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o handy_a work_n if_o this_o be_v our_o daily_a and_o constant_a practice_n the_o blessing_n of_o god_n will_v go_v along_o with_o we_o in_o all_o our_o action_n sin_n can_v then_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v death_n fearful_a to_o we_o death_n can_v then_o come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o neither_o will_v the_o remembrance_n of_o it_o be_v terrible_a but_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o commend_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n because_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o his_o heavenly_a mansion_n until_o they_o shall_v be_v again_o unite_v to_o our_o body_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n and_o make_v glorious_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o but_o natural_a man_n know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o their_o soul_n nor_o the_o great_a price_n wherewith_o they_o be_v redeem_v if_o they_o belong_v unto_o christ_n they_o suppose_v that_o the_o soul_n come_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o body_n do_v whereas_o it_o be_v a_o immortal_a spirit_n which_o proceed_v not_o from_o any_o mortal_a principle_n but_o be_v breathe_v into_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o body_n be_v frame_v in_o the_o womb_n and_o make_v capable_a to_o receive_v this_o breath_n of_o
as_o rebel_n to_o he_o but_o he_o take_v we_o for_o his_o own_o people_n and_o as_o his_o servant_n 33._o servant_n jer._n 31._o 33._o according_a to_o his_o promise_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o also_o as_o his_o child_n by_o adoption_n in_o christ_n which_o make_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n sweet_a and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o a_o earthly_a prince_n but_o it_o be_v a_o far_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n all_o the_o apostle_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n do_v account_v it_o their_o high_a honour_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o they_o do_v much_o glory_n in_o this_o honourable_a title_n thus_o say_v that_o kingly_a prophet_n david_n 16._o david_n psal_n 116._o 16._o o_o lord_n true_o i_o be_o thy_o servant_n and_o the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n thou_o have_v loose_v my_o bond_n david_n use_v this_o as_o a_o strong_a motive_n to_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o prayer_n and_o to_o grant_v his_o request_n 16._o request_n psal_n 86._o 2_o 4_o 16._o o_o thou_o my_o god_n save_v thy_o servant_n that_o trust_v in_o thou_o rejoice_v the_o soul_n of_o thy_o servant_n f●r_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n do_v i_o lift_v up_o my_o soul_n o_o turn_n unto_o i_o and_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o give_v thy_o strength_n unto_o thy_o servant_n and_o save_v the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n god_n give_v this_o title_n of_o honour_n to_o his_o choice_a servant_n as_o to_o abraham_n to_o jacob_n to_o moses_n to_o david_n job_n zor●bab●l_n and_o to_o christ_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v man_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 8._o prophet_n zech._n 3._o 8._o behold_v i_o will_v bring_v forth_o my_o servant_n the_o branch_n this_o honour_n have_v all_o they_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o he_o have_v reconcile_v they_o to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o have_v make_v they_o his_o servant_n by_o grace_n wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o have_v any_o clear_a evidence_n to_o our_o conscience_n that_o we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o atonement_n if_o we_o do_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o with_o faithful_a heart_n in_o sincerity_n and_o in_o truth_n we_o may_v then_o cheerful_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o god_n which_o will_v be_v acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o own_o soul_n for_o by_o this_o sweet_a relation_n that_o we_o have_v unto_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o he_o will_v be_v accept_v though_o they_o be_v imperfect_o perform_v by_o we_o if_o we_o show_v our_o best_a care_n to_o please_v he_o from_o a_o upright_a heart_n as_o his_o faithful_a servant_n ought_v to_o do_v also_o we_o may_v apply_v ourselves_o by_o holy_a supplication_n to_o our_o heavenly_a lord_n as_o be_v his_o servant_n to_o protect_v we_o from_o our_o enemy_n to_o provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o necessity_n to_o succour_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o to_o countenance_v we_o as_o his_o servant_n in_o all_o our_o temptation_n that_o our_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v we_o and_o that_o our_o spirit_n may_v not_o sink_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o they_o whatsoever_o we_o want_v we_o may_v have_v it_o of_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o we_o fear_v may_v come_v upon_o we_o he_o will_v prevent_v it_o or_o fit_v we_o for_o it_o or_o else_o he_o will_v sanctify_v it_o for_o our_o good_a that_o we_o may_v find_v comfort_n in_o it_o wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o contemplate_v his_o greatness_n for_o his_o goodness_n will_v sweeten_v that_o fear_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v death_n in_o a_o servile_a way_n for_o it_o have_v no_o sting_n to_o hurt_v we_o and_o we_o need_v not_o be_v terrify_v at_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o great_a judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a nor_o at_o the_o rigour_n and_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v be_v then_o our_o judge_n who_o be_v now_o our_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n we_o can_v then_o but_o show_v our_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o our_o love_n to_o christ_n by_o our_o willing_a and_o ready_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o by_o our_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o our_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n by_o ruminate_v on_o his_o word_n and_o by_o contemplate_v his_o wonderful_a work_n our_o thought_n will_v be_v continual_o upon_o he_o our_o delight_n will_v be_v to_o meditate_v on_o he_o and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v always_o towards_o he_o consider_v further_a what_o christ_n have_v do_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o comfortable_o meditate_v on_o god_n he_o have_v not_o only_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o make_v we_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o grace_n but_o also_o 12_o also_o john_n 1._o 12_o he_o have_v give_v power_n to_o as_o many_o as_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o privilege_n and_o honour_n we_o have_v only_o by_o faith_n 6._o faith_n gal._n 4._o 5_o 6._o who_o have_v redeem_v we_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o because_o we_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n ftther_o how_o comfortable_a then_o will_v our_o meditation_n be_v to_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o god_n as_o he_o be_v our_o father_n what_o can_v deject_v our_o spirit_n or_o make_v we_o afraid_a if_o we_o have_v a_o sure_a confidence_n that_o god_n be_v our_o father_n can_v we_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o misery_n than_o 19_o than_o luk._n 15._o 18_o 19_o the_o poor_a prodigal_a in_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o yet_o when_o he_o remember_v his_o father_n he_o be_v comfort_v and_o refresh_v can_v any_o poor_a soul_n be_v deep_a plunge_v in_o sin_n or_o lead_v a_o more_o vicious_a life_n than_o this_o prodigal_a do_v and_o yet_o his_o father_n do_v not_o cast_v he_o off_o but_o upon_o his_o true_a submission_n he_o receive_v he_o again_o as_o his_o son_n why_o then_o shall_v we_o despair_v of_o mercy_n though_o our_o sin_n be_v many_o and_o very_o great_a why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o terror_n of_o death_n if_o we_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o adoption_n for_o 7._o for_o gal._n 4._o 7._o we_o be_v heir_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o we_o go_v to_o possess_v that_o inheritance_n which_o belong_v to_o we_o as_o son_n and_o why_o shall_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v terrible_a to_o we_o see_v christ_n our_o redeemer_n will_v make_v up_o our_o account_n for_o we_o and_o will_v perfect_v with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n whatsoever_o be_v want_v on_o our_o part_n do_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n and_o will_v free_v we_o from_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o law_n the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n &_o from_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n and_o at_o last_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o to_o answer_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v do_v here_o in_o the_o flesh_n sure_o not_o for_o then_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n have_v not_o be_v perfect_o finish_v but_o christ_n will_v be_v then_o our_o hide_v place_n he_o will_v cover_v all_o our_o sin_n under_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o will_v shelter_v we_o from_o the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o from_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n justice_n we_o have_v now_o much_o matter_n for_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a meditation_n to_o comfort_n and_o refresh_v our_o languish_a soul_n when_o they_o be_v any_o way_n perplex_v with_o sorrow_n fear_n or_o doubt_n if_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o our_o happy_a condition_n by_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n for_o we_o have_v the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n by_o the_o right_n of_o purchase_n and_o so_o be_v none_o but_o such_o only_a who_o christ_n have_v buy_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n also_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o our_o adoption_n it_o will_v be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o we_o and_o exceed_v sweet_a to_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n for_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o hereby_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o son_n both_o in_o what_o we_o be_v free_v from_o and_o in_o what_o we_o have_v right_a unto_o for_o we_o be_v free_v from_o all_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o evil_a of_o punishment_n sin_n have_v no_o power_n to_o condemn_v we_o though_o it_o
shall_v see_v 9_o see_v gen._n 47_o 9_o that_o our_o day_n be_v few_o and_o evil_a as_o jacob_n say_v unto_o pharaoh_n and_o holy_a david_n will_v tell_v we_o 4._o we_o psa_fw-la 144._o 4._o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o vanity_n his_o day_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n that_o pass_v away_o also_o 5._o also_o psal_n 39_o 5._o that_o our_o day_n be_v as_o a_o hand-breadth_n and_o our_o age_n be_v as_o nothing_o before_o god_n and_o in_o another_o psalm_n he_o say_v thus_o 16._o thus_o psal_n 103._o 15_o 16._o as_o for_o man_n his_o day_n be_v as_o grass_n as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n so_o he_o flowrish_v for_o the_o wind_n pass_v over_o it_o and_o it_o be_v go_v and_o the_o place_n thereof_o shall_v know_v it_o no_o more_o thus_o say_v holy_a job_n 7_o job_n job_n 7._o 6._o 7_o my_o day_n be_v swift_a than_o a_o weaver_n shuttle_n and_o be_v spend_v without_o hope_n o_o remember_v that_o my_o life_n be_v wind_n if_o our_o life_n be_v wind_n how_o soon_o then_o be_v it_o go_v how_o little_a then_o be_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o little_a moment_n depend_v our_o eternal_a happiness_n for_o when_o this_o life_n be_v end_v there_o be_v no_o more_o time_n for_o grace_n or_o to_o seek_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v extreme_a folly_n to_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o this_o precious_a time_n without_o some_o gain_n of_o grace_n or_o to_o spend_v it_o to_o any_o other_o end_n than_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n then_o much_o more_o to_o waste_v it_o in_o sinful_a pleasure_n to_o the_o great_a dishonour_n of_o his_o name_n and_o to_o the_o destruction_n and_o loss_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n yet_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o frailty_n of_o our_o unregenerate_a part_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o slip_n and_o fail_n and_o sometime_o we_o do_v so_o dangerous_o fall_v that_o god_n will_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o eclipse_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o gracious_a countenance_n for_o a_o time_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o sense_n nor_o apprehension_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o we_o and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o spirit_n will_v seem_v to_o we_o to_o be_v wither_v and_o dry_v up_o but_o god_n have_v his_o special_a time_n of_o grace_n when_o he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o and_o when_o he_o will_v gracious_o accept_v we_o and_o will_v manifest_v again_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n shall_v again_o shine_v forth_o in_o we_o when_o god_n have_v wrought_v his_o own_o work_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o have_v humble_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n with_o his_o rod_n he_o will_v then_o call_v to_o we_o say_v 8._o say_v psal_n 27._o 8._o seek_v you_o my_o face_n and_o our_o heart_n must_v present_o answer_v with_o david_n thy_o face_n lord_n will_v we_o seek_v for_o to_o answer_v present_o to_o god_n call_v be_v the_o time_n of_o gracious_a acceptation_n thus_o say_v david_n i_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n unto_o thou_o and_o my_o iniquity_n have_v i_o not_o hide_v i_o say_v 6._o k_o ps_n 32._o 5_o 6._o i_o will_v confess_v my_o transgression_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o sin_n for_o this_o shall_v every_o one_o that_o be_v godly_a prey_n unto_o thou_o in_o a_o time_n when_o thou_o may_v be_v find_v also_o when_o we_o seek_v with_o all_o faithful_a diligence_n unto_o the_o lord_n in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o sue_v unto_o he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o gracious_a and_o propitious_a to_o we_o as_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 14._o prophet_n jer._n 29._o 12_o 13_o 14._o then_o shall_v you_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v go_v and_o pray_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hearken_v unto_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o find_v i_o when_o you_o shall_v search_v for_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o i_o will_v be_v find_v of_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v down_o a_o more_o particular_a time_n of_o grace_n 13._o grace_n heb._n 3._o 7_o 13._o to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o ●our_n heart_n and_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n for_o god_n do_v call_v to_o we_o every_o day_n by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o to_o seek_v his_o face_n and_o his_o favour_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o put_v off_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n until_o the_o morrow_n for_o as_o james_n say_v 14_o say_v jam._n 4._o 14_o w●_n know_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v on_o th●_n morrow_n for_o what_o be_v our_o life_n it_o be_v even_o a_o vapour_n that_o appear_v for_o a_o little_a time_n and_o then_o vanish_v away_o it_o be_v now_o plain_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o principal_a time_n of_o grace_n be_v when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o offer_v it_o and_o when_o he_o do_v give_v we_o the_o mean_n to_o attain_v unto_o it_o for_o god_n keep_v the_o gift_n of_o grace_n in_o his_o own_o power_n to_o give_v it_o to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v and_o except_o god_n do_v offer_v it_o we_o can_v receive_v it_o the_o very_a first_o desire_n of_o seek_v grace_n be_v god_n free_a offer_n of_o it_o to_o we_o for_o he_o do_v incline_v the_o will_n and_o work_v those_o holy_a desire_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n sometime_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v work_v they_o in_o we_o upon_o the_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o thereby_o move_v we_o to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o true_a repentance_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 7_o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 6_o 7_o seek_v you_o the_o lord_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v call_v you_o upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a man_n his_o thought_n and_o let_v he_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v also_o work_v thus_o in_o our_o heart_n upon_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n and_o upon_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n to_o humble_v our_o soul_n before_o god_n that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v prepare_v to_o seek_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n by_o fervent_a prayer_n thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 16._o prophet_n isa_n 26._o 16._o lord_n in_o trouble_n have_v they_o visit_v thou_o they_o pour_v out_o a_o prayer_n when_o thy_o chasten_n be_v upon_o they_o if_o we_o do_v due_o consider_v these_o thiog_n and_o ponder_v well_o upon_o they_o in_o our_o heart_n it_o will_v teach_v we_o high_o to_o prize_v that_o time_n which_o god_n do_v lend_v we_o here_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o gain_n of_o grace_n that_o hereafter_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o not_o to_o refuse_v any_o offer_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n shall_v make_v unto_o we_o first_o because_o o●r_v time_n be_v short_a and_o momentany_a and_o we_o know_v not_o how_o long_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o second_o because_o our_o little_a time_n be_v transitory_a and_o pass_v swift_o away_o and_o we_o can_v recall_v one_o moment_n that_o be_v go_v three_o because_o it_o be_v the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o grace_n and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o gracious_a acceptation_n four_o because_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n both_o of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n depend_v upon_o this_o short_a time_n of_o our_o life_n last_o if_o we_o lose_v any_o opportunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n do_v give_v we_o we_o show_v great_a unthankfulness_n to_o god_n and_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o will_v give_v we_o another_o opportunity_n for_o it_o wherefore_o we_o shall_v not_o spend_v our_o time_n idle_o or_o unprofitable_o but_o we_o must_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n improve_v it_o to_o those_o end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v give_v it_o to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n who_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o to_o regain_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n when_o we_o have_v lose_v the_o apprehension_n of_o it_o by_o our_o sin_n many_o heavenly_a comfort_n we_o shall_v find_v if_o we_o listen_v to_o god_n call_v and_o receive_v grace_n when_o he_o do_v offer_v it_o first_o god_n will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o if_o we_o seek_v he_o with_o pure_a affection_n and_o in_o the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n second_o he_o
and_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o will_v with_o the_o temptation_n also_o make_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o 244_o it_o psal_n 37._o 244_o though_o we_o fall_v we_o shall_v not_o be_v utter_o cast_v down_o for_o our_o lord_n christ_n hold_v we_o with_o his_o hand_n and_o he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o again_o by_o true_a repentance_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n if_o the_o floodgate_n of_o sorrow_n be_v set_v open_a upon_o we_o if_o the_o fear_n of_o trouble_n or_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n do_v surprise_v we_o christ_n will_v stop_v those_o sloud-gate_n and_o will_v comfort_v we_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n or_o else_o he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o eye_n of_o faith_n not_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o with_o a_o sad_a and_o heavy_a heart_n but_o to_o look_v up_o above_o they_o to_o that_o celestial_a happiness_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o we_o which_o no_o eye_n have_v see_v no_o tongue_n can_v express_v and_o no_o heart_n can_v conceive_v and_o to_o wait_v patient_o for_o it_o until_o christ_n our_o ever_o bless_a redeemer_n shall_v reveal_v it_o to_o we_o which_o will_v be_v but_o in_o part_n in_o this_o life_n by_o faith_n but_o full_o and_o perfect_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v according_a to_o every_o man_n capacity_n also_o if_o the_o devil_n do_v aggravate_v our_o sin_n and_o ser_n they_o before_o we_o in_o a_o multiply_a glass_n to_o the_o break_n of_o our_o heart_n with_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o to_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o will_v make_v we_o shed_v many_o bitter_a tear_n for_o they_o as_o peter_n do_v than_o christ_n will_v look_v graciouslie_o upon_o we_o and_o will_v give_v we_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o true_a consolation_n by_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o we_o may_v further_o learn_v instruction_n by_o peter_n fall_n that_o if_o we_o give_v way_n to_o any_o sin_n the_o devil_n will_v easy_o draw_v we_o unto_o high_a degree_n of_o sin_v as_o he_o do_v peter_n for_o at_o the_o first_o he_o do_v but_o simple_o deny_v christ_n than_o he_o deny_v he_o with_o a_o oath_n 74._o oath_n mat._n 26._o 74._o and_o at_o last_o he_o begin_v to_o curse_v and_o to_o swear_v that_o he_o know_v not_o the_o man_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v be_v very_o careful_a to_o nip_v sin_n in_o the_o bud_n lest_o it_o lay_v we_o open_v to_o the_o devil_n tyranny_n or_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n whereby_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o recover_v ourselves_o but_o rather_o we_o shall_v fall_v away_o more_o and_o more_o from_o god_n sin_n be_v a_o spiritual_a gangrene_n to_o the_o soul_n which_o will_v eat_v into_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o time_n cut_v off_o and_o kill_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o true_a repentance_n there_o be_v so_o much_o of_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n in_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n as_o that_o they_o sin_v daily_o and_o the_o devil_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v advantage_n upon_o every_o sin_n but_o he_o can_v easy_o fasten_v his_o sting_n upon_o their_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v not_o glue_v so_o fast_o to_o their_o heart_n but_o that_o they_o may_v easy_o remove_v they_o whereas_o his_o sting_n will_v soon_o take_v hold_n of_o any_o sin_n that_o be_v root_v in_o we_o either_o by_o custom_n or_o by_o delight_n to_o wound_v our_o soul_n even_o to_o the_o death_n if_o we_o sleight_v the_o least_o sin_n it_o will_v bring_v we_o on_o to_o great_a and_o if_o we_o be_v careless_a of_o small_a sin_n they_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o a_o custom_n of_o sin_v which_o will_v quick_o beget_v a_o habit_n of_o sin_n in_o we_o which_o be_v a_o fit_a ground_n for_o the_o devil_n to_o work_v upon_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o return_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o plunge_v we_o deep_o into_o the_o gulf_n of_o sin_n unless_o christ_n in_o his_o abundant_a mercy_n do_v touch_v our_o heart_n with_o his_o spirit_n to_o let_v we_o see_v from_o whence_o we_o be_v fall_v and_o do_v also_o give_v we_o grace_n to_o repent_v and_o return_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v keep_v a_o more_o diligent_a watch_n over_o ourselves_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v if_o we_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o in_o peter_n we_o shall_v see_v that_o we_o also_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o like_a delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n we_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o deny_v christ_n and_o to_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n as_o he_o be_v and_o the_o fear_n of_o trouble_n persecution_n or_o danger_n for_o christ_n will_v prevail_v as_o much_o with_o we_o as_o it_o do_v with_o he_o to_o make_v we_o renounce_v our_o profession_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o brink_n of_o perdition_n but_o christ_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o fall_v into_o that_o bottomless_a pit_n but_o will_v look_v upon_o we_o in_o mercy_n as_o he_o do_v upon_o peter_n the_o devil_n do_v delude_v peter_n with_o vain_a hope_n that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o shall_v escape_v the_o trouble_n and_o danger_n that_o may_v come_v upon_o he_o if_o it_o be_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n for_o thus_o he_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o ready_a way_n to_o lose_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ_n and_o into_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o eternal_a destruction_n thus_o also_o do_v the_o devil_n delude_v we_o if_o we_o trust_v he_o for_o he_o will_v promise_v all_o worldly_a wealth_n and_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o will_v give_v to_o some_o a_o large_a portion_n of_o they_o in_o part_n of_o payment_n but_o in_o the_o end_n he_o will_v pay_v they_o with_o wormwood_n and_o gall_n which_o will_v be_v more_o bitter_a to_o they_o than_o peter_n tear_n be_v unto_o he_o when_o we_o think_v ourselves_o most_o strong_a than_o we_o be_v soon_o overcome_v and_o when_o we_o presume_v most_o upon_o our_o own_o strength_n than_o we_o give_v the_o devil_n the_o great_a advantage_n against_o we_o in_o prosperity_n we_o think_v ourselves_o so_o strong_a that_o we_o can_v be_v shake_v we_o be_v then_o secure_a and_o able_a to_o stand_v unmoveable_a against_o any_o opposition_n 22._o opposition_n 1_o cor._n 10_o 22._o but_o let_v he_o that_o think_v he_o stand_v take_v heed_n lest_o he_o fall_v for_o alas_o we_o know_v not_o the_o wile_n of_o satan_n we_o can_v conceive_v how_o many_o way_n he_o have_v to_o deceive_v we_o what_o way_n shall_v we_o then_o take_v to_o escape_v these_o wile_n and_o deceit_n whereof_o the_o world_n be_v full_a by_o his_o mean_n there_o be_v a_o deceitful_a tongue_n against_o which_o david_n thus_o pray_v 1._o pray_v psal_n 120._o 1._o deliver_v my_o soul_n o_o lord_n from_o lie_v lip_n and_o from_o a_o deceitful_a tongue_n there_o be_v also_o a_o bag_n of_o deceitful_a weight_n which_o be_v always_o second_v with_o a_o false_a tongue_n as_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o his_o prophet_n 12._o prophet_n mic._n 6._o 11_o 12._o shall_v i_o account_v they_o pure_a with_o the_o wicked_a balance_n and_o with_o the_o bag_n of_o deceitful_a weight_n for_o the_o rich_a man_n thereof_o be_v full_a of_o violence_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o have_v speak_v lie_v and_o their_o tongu●_n be_v deceitful_a in_o their_o mouth_n the_o wise_a man_n tell_v we_o 36._o we_o prov._n 14._o 36._o of_o a_o deceitful_a witness_n 6._o witness_n prov._n 23._o 6._o and_o that_o the_o dainty_n at_o a_o rich_a man_n table_n be_v deceitful_a meat_n because_o they_o will_v easy_o entice_v we_o to_o gluttony_n also_o 6._o also_o prov._n 27._o 6._o that_o the_o kiss_n of_o a_o enemy_n be_v deceitful_a for_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o false_a heart_n who_o can_v discover_v the_o deceitfulness_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n or_o the_o delusion_n of_o his_o own_o fancy_n every_o sinful_a lust_n and_o evil_a concupiscence_n do_v delude_v we_o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o deceit_n to_o beguile_v we_o wicked_a man_n have_v their_o wile_n to_o vex_v the_o godly_a and_o such_o as_o be_v simple_a in_o heart_n 18._o heart_n num_fw-la 25._o 18._o as_o the_o midianite_n vex_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n with_o their_o wile_n wherewith_o they_o beguile_v they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o peor_n and_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o c●zby_n if_o we_o will_v be_v well_o fence_v from_o these_o delusion_n which_o come_v from_o the_o devil_n 11._o devil_n eph._n 6_o 11._o we_o must_v put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n ●nd_v then_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v against_o they_o all_o this_o holy_a armour_n will_v
and_o seek_v opportunity_n to_o betray_v he_o unto_o they_o then_o he_o stir_v up_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n against_o he_o who_o out_o of_o malice_n and_o envy_n do_v persecute_v he_o and_o false_o accuse_v he_o before_o herod_n and_o pilate_n because_o the_o people_n do_v so_o much_o resort_n unto_o he_o pilate_n condemn_v he_o out_o of_o fear_n and_o flattery_n to_o keep_v his_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o caesar_n and_o to_o please_v the_o people_n for_o he_o think_v he_o do_v it_o for_o caesar_n honour_n the_o soldier_n crucify_v he_o for_o a_o reward_n and_o to_o make_v a_o spoil_n of_o his_o garment_n thus_o they_o be_v all_o the_o devil_n instrument_n to_o put_v the_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n to_o a_o most_o shameful_a and_o cruel_a death_n for_o their_o own_o wicked_a end_n but_o god_n do_v over-rule_v they_o all_o by_o his_o gracious_a and_o wise_a providence_n and_o make_v all_o their_o purpose_n and_o action_n to_o serve_v for_o the_o further_a of_o his_o most_o love_a and_o merciful_a end_n which_o be_v decree_v from_o eternity_n from_o hence_o we_o may_v draw_v sweet_a meditation_n for_o our_o comfort_n upon_o the_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o can_v and_o will_v over-rule_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o all_o wicked_a man_n and_o will_v so_o dispose_v of_o all_o their_o plot_n and_o device_n which_o they_o intend_v for_o the_o hurt_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o they_o shall_v all_o serve_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o their_o good_a he_o can_v frustrate_v their_o wicked_a intention_n and_o can_v bring_v about_o his_o own_o end_n to_o effect_v his_o own_o work_n by_o they_o god_n have_v this_o provident_a care_n of_o his_o people_n that_o whatsoever_o their_o enemy_n do_v malicious_o intend_v or_o devise_v against_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o nought_o or_o else_o he_o will_v make_v it_o serve_v for_o their_o advantage_n and_o gain_v though_o our_o enemy_n be_v as_o strong_a as_o ●●_o as_o 1_o sam._n ●●_o goliath_n be_v and_o though_o we_o be_v as_o unfit_a to_o encounter_v with_o they_o as_o david_n be_v to_o fight_v with_o that_o great_a giant_n yet_o if_o we_o put_v our_o confidence_n in_o god_n as_o david_n do_v and_o keep_v close_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o will_v direct_v a_o stone_n to_o beat_v out_o their_o brain_n and_o though_o they_o be_v as_o cunning_a and_o as_o subtle_a 17_o subtle_a 2_o sam_n 17_o as_o achitophel_n be_v yet_o god_n can_v confound_v they_o in_o their_o own_o craft_n and_o policy_n mark_v now_o and_o consider_v it_o well_o how_o god_n in_o justice_n do_v revenge_v the_o treachery_n and_o cruelty_n that_o be_v use_v in_o betray_v and_o in_o murder_v of_o his_o dear_a and_o only_a son_n and_o how_o he_o bring_v their_o wickedness_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n for_o judas_n be_v give_v up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n 5_o mind_n mat._n 27_o 5_o and_o immediate_o after_o he_o hang_v himself_o god_n do_v severe_o punish_v the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o this_o most_o horrible_a fact_n and_o lay_v the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o his_o son_n upon_o they_o and_o upon_o their_o posterity_n which_o do_v still_o rest_n upon_o they_o because_o they_o do_v wilful_o without_o cause_n and_o out_o of_o malice_n shed_v it_o pilate_n also_o be_v soon_o after_o cast_v out_o of_o caesar_n favour_n and_o banish_v into_o france_n and_o the_o devil_n be_v hereby_o quite_o vanquish_v and_o overcome_v so_o that_o now_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o hurt_v the_o mean_a of_o god_n saint_n thus_o will_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o all_o those_o that_o have_v their_o hand_n stain_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o anoint_v once_o and_o with_o all_o such_o as_o be_v actor_n in_o any_o wicked_a design_n they_o may_v hide_v their_o counsel_n in_o the_o dark_a yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o god_n for_o he_o have_v a_o all-seeing_a eye_n to_o discover_v what_o they_o go_v about_o and_o he_o will_v bring_v the_o evil_a of_o their_o do_n upon_o themselves_o or_o upon_o their_o child_n wherefore_o have_v thou_o no_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o partake_v not_o with_o the_o wicked_a in_o their_o evil_a design_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n will_v cleave_v to_o thou_o and_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o go_v unpunished_a for_o if_o thou_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n thou_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o their_o punishment_n therefore_o 7._o therefore_o eph._n 5._o 6_o 7._o paul_n advise_v the_o ephesian_n not_o to_o be_v partaker_n with_o wicked_a man_n because_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n for_o their_o sin_n god_n call_v his_o people_n out_o of_o babylon_n say_v 4_o say_v 1_o rev._n 18._o 4_o come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n but_o it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n to_o partake_v with_o the_o child_n of_o god_n in_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n in_o all_o holy_a duty_n 7._o duty_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 5_o 7._o and_o in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n because_o we_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o consolation_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n thus_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n shall_v mutual_o join_v together_o in_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v also_o mutual_o have_v the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o those_o service_n here_o and_o also_o partake_v together_o with_o they_o of_o the_o glory_n that_o afterward_o shall_v be_v reveal_v of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v between_o two_o thief_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 12_o prophet_n isa_n 53._o 12_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o transgressor_n one_o of_o they_o have_v no_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n nor_o grief_n of_o heart_n for_o his_o offence_n but_o begin_v to_o rail_v upon_o christ_n to_o revile_v he_o and_o blasphemous_o to_o taunt_v he_o say_v 39_o say_v luk._n 23._o 39_o if_o thou_o be_v christ_n save_v thyself_o and_o we_o but_o the_o other_o be_v touch_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o a_o relent_a heart_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v free_o confess_v that_o they_o two_o do_v just_o and_o deserve_o suffer_v death_n for_o their_o offence_n but_o he_o do_v justify_v our_o belove_a saviour_n for_o his_o blameless_a innocency_n and_o he_o rebuke_v his_o fellow_n say_v fear_v thou_o not_o god_n see_v thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condemnation_n then_o he_o turn_v to_o christ_n to_o implore_v his_o mercy_n and_o make_v this_o short_a and_o sweet_a prayer_n to_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o shall_v come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n to_o who_o christ_n immediate_o give_v this_o gracious_a answer_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n sure_o these_o gracious_a word_n of_o christ_n do_v much_o mitigate_v and_o assuage_v the_o sorrow_n of_o his_o perplex_a mind_n and_o much_o ease_v the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o torment_n and_o this_o bless_a promise_n give_v he_o good_a assurance_n that_o after_o his_o present_a suffering_n and_o pain_n he_o shall_v enjoy_v rhe_n bless_a society_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n for_o as_o faith_n wrought_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o true_a contrition_n to_o repentance_n and_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o make_v a_o good_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o his_o fellow_n malefactor_n and_o also_o to_o present_v his_o humble_a request_n unto_o christ_n his_o lord_n for_o some_o gracious_a remembrance_n of_o he_o so_o no_o doubt_n it_o seal_v such_o a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o future_a happiness_n to_o his_o sorrowful_a soul_n and_o wound_a conscience_n that_o he_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v the_o promise_n and_o faithful_o look_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o whereby_o his_o faint_a spirit_n be_v much_o comfort_v and_o the_o cruel_a torturing_n of_o his_o body_n which_o he_o suffer_v be_v sanctify_v and_o sweeten_v to_o he_o here_o set_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o free_a love_n and_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o poor_a sinner_n he_o choose_v who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o refuse_v his_o gift_n of_o grace_n be_v free_a his_o love_n and_o favour_n be_v not_o necessitate_v to_o any_o 2d_o any_o gen._n 25._o 2d_o there_o be_v twin_n in_o reb●ccas_n womb_n 13._o womb_n rom._n 9_o 13._o god_n love_v the_o one_o and_o he_o hate_v the_o other_o two_o man_n may_v be_v in_o one_o bed_n god_n may_v take_v the_o one_o and_o he_o may_v leave_v the_o
and_o honour_n wherewith_o god_n have_v crown_v he_o than_o our_o soul_n will_v feel_v a_o comfortable_a influence_n of_o grace_n from_o his_o glorious_a exaltation_n to_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o he_o have_v lead_v captive_a all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n and_o have_v so_o weaken_v their_o power_n that_o they_o have_v no_o ability_n to_o hurt_v our_o soul_n also_o that_o in_o his_o due_a time_n he_o will_v take_v revenge_n upon_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n and_o as_o he_o be_v crown_v with_o the_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n so_o likewise_o he_o will_v crown_v the_o mean_a of_o his_o saint_n with_o honour_n and_o dignity_n far_o above_o the_o great_a potentate_n upon_o earth_n this_o do_v also_o give_v we_o assurance_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v from_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n sufficient_a grace_n for_o the_o mortify_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o our_o life_n and_o for_o our_o comfort_n in_o all_o tribulation_n he_o will_v support_v we_o in_o all_o our_o spiritual_a weakness_n he_o will_v cure_v all_o the_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n and_o he_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n because_o he_o do_v bind_v we_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o faith_n so_o close_o to_o himself_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o total_o and_o final_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o and_o he_o will_v so_o protect_v and_o defend_v we_o that_o no_o adversary_n power_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o take_v we_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n but_o if_o we_o conceive_v of_o these_o high_a honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o our_o humane_a capacity_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o reach_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v too_o much_o undervalue_v his_o highness_n and_o disrespect_n his_o sacred_a majesty_n we_o can_v confide_v in_o his_o power_n to_o defend_v we_o against_o all_o our_o spiritual_a adversary_n neither_o can_v we_o rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o his_o goodness_n to_o supply_v all_o our_o want_n to_o minister_v relief_n in_o all_o our_o necessity_n to_o heal_v all_o our_o infirmity_n and_o to_o be_v all_o in_o all_o unto_o we_o upon_o all_o occasion_n our_o frail_a nature_n will_v be_v full_a of_o doubt_n and_o fear_n to_o weaken_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o for_o according_a to_o our_o esteem_n of_o he_o in_o our_o heart_n such_o be_v our_o faith_n such_o be_v our_o hope_n and_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o have_v no_o spiritual_a eye_n to_o discern_v these_o essential_a honour_n and_o excellency_n of_o christ_n we_o can_v then_o reach_v they_o with_o that_o reverence_n and_o fear_v with_o that_o duty_n and_o obedience_n as_o we_o ought_v and_o our_o best_a worship_n and_o service_n will_v come_v far_o short_a of_o that_o which_o his_o great_a and_o dreadful_a name_n require_v now_o then_o examine_v thy_o own_o heart_n and_o see_v what_o good_a evidence_n thou_o have_v that_o christ_n be_v dear_a and_o precious_a unto_o thou_o and_o that_o thou_o do_v honour_v he_o with_o thy_o heart_n and_o soul_n what_o experience_n have_v thou_o have_v of_o his_o goodness_n and_o power_n how_o have_v thou_o perform_v thy_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o he_o what_o awful_a reverence_n and_o filial_a fear_n have_v thou_o have_v of_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n when_o thou_o have_v be_v in_o his_o presence_n and_o about_o his_o business_n if_o thy_o conscience_n can_v tell_v thou_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o joy_n of_o thy_o heart_n that_o he_o be_v thy_o lord_n god_n thy_o king_n and_o governor_n then_o he_o have_v set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n in_o thou_o and_o rule_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o that_o hereafter_o he_o will_v bring_v thou_o to_o his_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o glory_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v thus_o wrought_v in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o will_v find_v a_o conformity_n of_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n thy_o affection_n will_v be_v square_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o love_v that_o which_o he_o love_v and_o to_o hate_v that_o which_o he_o hate_v thy_o sinful_a desire_n will_v be_v restrain_v for_o the_o fear_n and_o dread_n of_o his_o great_a name_n will_v be_v always_o before_o thy_o eye_n and_o the_o love_n of_o he_o will_v constrain_v thou_o to_o obedience_n also_o the_o hardness_n of_o the_o heart_n will_v be_v take_v away_o 27._o ezek._n 36._o 26_o 27._o and_o it_o will_v be_v make_v tender_a and_o flexible_a fit_a to_o receive_v any_o heavenly_a impression_n of_o grace_n our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n every_o true_a believer_n have_v a_o peculiar_a advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n more_o than_o unregenerate_a man_n in_o whatsoever_o they_o possess_v though_o these_o have_v more_o of_o earthly_a blessing_n and_o of_o common_a grace_n than_o many_o of_o god_n servant_n yet_o it_o be_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n for_o by_o christ_n they_o be_v sanctify_v to_o the_o one_o &_o not_o the_o other_o but_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a gain_n by_o christ_n which_o be_v only_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n whereof_o unregenerate_a man_n be_v not_o capable_a until_o faith_n be_v wrought_v in_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o unite_v they_o unto_o christ_n first_o we_o have_v this_o advantage_n by_o christ_n above_o unregenerate_a man_n 17._o man_n gen._n 3._o 17._o that_o the_o curse_n which_o god_n lay_v upon_o the_o creature_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n be_v take_v away_o and_o he_o have_v give_v to_o every_o true_a believer_n in_o christ_n the_o free_a use_n of_o they_o all_o for_o his_o comfort_n and_o to_o glorify_v god_n in_o their_o right_a use_n and_o by_o their_o thankfulness_n for_o they_o for_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v they_o and_o make_v they_o blessing_n to_o they_o but_o unregenerate_a man_n have_v no_o right_n to_o what_o they_o enjoy_v because_o they_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o curse_n still_o cleave_v to_o whatsoever_o they_o possess_v for_o christ_n have_v not_o take_v it_o away_o nor_o sanctify_v their_o estate_n unto_o they_o for_o their_o good_a second_o this_o be_v our_o peculiar_a gain_n by_o christ_n that_o he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o by_o nature_n be_v upon_o our_o soul_n and_o have_v fasten_v it_o to_o his_o own_o cross_n whereas_o natural_a man_n have_v the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n still_o cleave_v to_o their_o soul_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o that_o condition_n this_o be_v a_o great_a advantage_n to_o we_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v it_o for_o now_o we_o may_v appear_v with_o boldness_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v the_o accusation_n of_o the_o devil_n our_o conscience_n can_v witness_v nothing_o against_o we_o because_o we_o have_v no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o law_n can_v condemn_v we_o 1._o we_o rom._n 8._o 1._o there_o be_v therefore_o now_o no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n 6_o spirit_n isa_n 53._o 5_o 6_o for_o christ_n be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n as_o say_v the_o prophet_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o with_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v all_o we_o like_v sheep_n have_v go_v astray_o we_o have_v turn_v every_o one_o to_o his_o own_o way_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o thus_o be_v our_o sin_n impute_v unto_o christ_n because_o be_v have_v take_v they_o upon_o himself_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v appear_v without_o sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n three_o this_o be_v a_o special_a gain_n that_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n above_o all_o other_o man_n that_o he_o have_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n 13._o law_n gal._n 3._o 13._o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o for_o it_o be_v write_v curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n christ_n in_o our_o nature_n and_o for_o we_o have_v fulfil_v the_o whole_a righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n by_o his_o active_a obedience_n to_o it_o and_o he_o have_v suffer_v the_o penalty_n of_o it_o by_o his_o passive_a obedience_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n may_v be_v satisfy_v for_o all_o our_o sin_n so_o that_o now_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n nor_o under_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o be_v under_o grace_n because_o he_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n and_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n that_o
iniquity_n of_o our_o sin_n unto_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o of_o his_o free_a grace_n to_o account_v we_o just_a by_o the_o imputation_n of_o his_o righteousness_n to_o we_o through_o faith_n so_o likewise_o hereby_o we_o have_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o all_o the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o son_n these_o be_v such_o benefit_n and_o such_o comfort_n as_o none_o can_v conceive_v but_o such_o as_o do_v enjoy_v they_o and_o none_o can_v enjoy_v they_o but_o by_o christ_n and_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o have_v they_o by_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o a_o true_a and_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o he_o second_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o all_o the_o gracious_a promise_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o do_v belong_v unto_o we_o also_o by_o faith_n we_o have_v great_a comfort_n and_o hope_n in_o all_o other_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n whether_o they_o concern_v this_o life_n or_o the_o life_n to_o come_v for_o we_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n and_o his_o ready_a will_n to_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o though_o his_o promise_n be_v sometime_o impossible_a to_o nature_n and_o above_o humane_a reason_n yet_o faith_n give_v we_o ability_n to_o rest_v upon_o they_o because_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v and_o able_a to_o perform_v his_o word_n thus_o say_v solomon_n bless_a 50._o ●_o 1_o king_n ●_o 50._o be_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v give_v rest_n unto_o his_o people_n israel_n according_a to_o all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v there_o have_v not_o fail_v one_o word_n of_o all_o his_o good_a promise_n which_o he_o promise_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n his_o servant_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v limit_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o though_o they_o be_v above_o our_o capacity_n yet_o we_o may_v confide_v in_o they_o for_o he_o will_v perform_v they_o in_o his_o due_a time_n 20._o time_n rom._n 4_o 18_o 19_o 20._o god_n make_v a_o promise_n to_o abraham_n that_o his_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o numerous_a as_o the_o star_n in_o the_o firmament_n when_o he_o be_v about_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a and_o yet_o bet●g_v not_o weak_a in_o faith_n he_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n through_o unbelief_n but_o against_o hope_n he_o believe_v in_o hope_n that_o he_o may_v become_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n and_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o what_o god_n have_v promise_v he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o perform_v 11_o perform_v heb._n 11._o 11_o sarah_n through_o faith_n receive_v strength_n to_o conceive_v seed_n though_o she_o be_v barren_a and_o past_a age_n and_o she_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o child_n because_o she_o judge_v he_o faithful_a who_o have_v promise_v if_o we_o do_v thus_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_v god_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o in_o all_o the_o chance_n and_o change_n that_o can_v happen_v to_o we_o it_o will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o to_o receive_v they_o content_o at_o god_n hand_n but_o the_o special_a servant_n of_o god_n may_v be_v so_o over-pressed_n with_o the_o extremity_n of_o affliction_n that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o distrust_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o to_o waver_v in_o their_o assiance_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o if_o he_o delay_v to_o perform_v his_o promise_n and_o to_o help_v they_o this_o be_v asaph_n case_n who_o thus_o complain_v 10._o complain_v psal_n 74._o 8_o 10._o be_v his_o mercy_n clean_o go_v for_o ever_o do_v his_o promise_n fail_v for_o evermore_o but_o he_o do_v present_o check_v himself_o and_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v his_o infirmity_n thus_o to_o distrust_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n thus_o say_v peter_n 9_o peter_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 9_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o slack_a concern_v his_o promise_n for_o he_o will_v remember_v to_o perform_v it_o when_o his_o time_n be_v come_v that_o it_o will_v make_v most_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o for_o our_o good_a wherefore_o 12._o wherefore_o heb._n 6._o 12._o we_o must_v wait_v patient_o upon_o god_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v inherit_v the_o promise_n 13._o promise_n eph._n 1._o 13._o for_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n that_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o god_n and_o upon_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v find_v many_o promise_n of_o grace_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n when_o we_o be_v under_o any_o temptation_n to_o comfort_v our_o soul_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n or_o under_o the_o pressure_n of_o any_o cross_n or_o calamity_n and_o when_o we_o have_v find_v a_o promise_n that_o will_v suit_n with_o our_o present_a condition_n then_o to_o make_v use_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o it_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o rest_v firm_o upon_o it_o though_o it_o be_v above_o hope_n for_o god_n can_v and_o will_v assure_o perform_v it_o to_o our_o great_a consolation_n if_o god_n do_v defer_v the_o performance_n of_o it_o long_o than_o we_o expect_v yet_o we_o must_v patient_o wait_v upon_o he_o for_o when_o he_o have_v wrought_v his_o own_o work_n in_o we_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o our_o good_a he_o will_v not_o then_o delay_v to_o perform_v it_o a_o moment_n long_o three_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v receive_v much_o profit_n and_o comfort_n by_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n without_o which_o our_o service_n to_o god_n can_v be_v perform_v according_a to_o his_o will_n the_o preparation_n of_o the_o heart_n to_o the_o profitable_a ●earing_n of_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n be_v by_o faith_n 9_o faith_n act._n 15._o 9_o because_o hereby_o our_o heart_n be_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n may_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n to_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o free_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n upon_o our_o affection_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n that_o it_o can_v take_v root_n in_o we_o for_o our_o edification_n and_o instruction_n to_o convince_v we_o of_o our_o error_n to_o reprove_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sorrow_n and_o sadness_n of_o heart_n it_o be_v faith_n that_o make_v our_o heart_n good_a ground_n fit_a to_o receive_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n word_n that_o it_o may_v take_v deep_a root_n in_o we_o to_o fructify_v and_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o do_v not_o hear_v it_o with_o heart_n purify_v from_o our_o corruption_n by_o faith_n how_o can_v it_o profit_v we_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o holy_a preparation_n to_o receive_v it_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v imprint_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n to_o be_v a_o word_n of_o power_n in_o we_o unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v fruitful_a in_o we_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o life_n if_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o season_v with_o faith_n 17._o faith_n rom._n 10._o 17._o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n use_v to_o convey_v spiritual_a knowledge_n to_o the_o understanding_n holy_a desire_n to_o the_o will_n to_o study_v and_o endeavour_v to_o a_o godly_a life_n and_o also_o true_a consolation_n to_o the_o soul_n so_o likewise_o our_o heart_n be_v prepare_v by_o faith_n to_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o as_o we_o do_v refresh_v our_o body_n with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n so_o our_o soul_n be_v refresh_v and_o comfort_v by_o our_o spiritual_a feed_n on_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n also_o faith_n will_v put_v a_o holy_a zeal_n into_o our_o prayer_n to_o make_v they_o fervent_a and_o effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o send_v we_o a_o gracious_a answer_n in_o his_o good_a time_n thus_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n 24._o christ_n mar._n 11._o 24._o what_o thing_n soever_o you_o desire_v when_o you_o pray_v believe_v that_o you_o receive_v they_o and_o you_o shall_v have_v they_o o_o what_o comfort_n may_v we_o find_v in_o our_o prayer_n when_o we_o be_v in_o want_n sorrow_n or_o in_o any_o necessity_n if_o we_o do_v pray_v with_o zealous_a affection_n and_o do_v faithful_o believe_v that_o our_o petition_n be_v grant_v before_o we_o receive_v they_o then_o we_o will_v wait_v upon_o god_n until_o he_o be_v
nor_o his_o parent_n have_v sin_v but_o it_o be_v that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a in_o he_o last_o god_n do_v sometime_o visit_v we_o with_o affliction_n to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o more_o frequency_n and_o fervency_n of_o prayer_n until_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o our_o trouble_n howsoever_o or_o to_o what_o end_n soever_o god_n do_v visit_v we_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v stand_v we_o in_o great_a stead_n to_o support_v we_o in_o our_o suffering_n and_o trial_n and_o to_o make_v the_o right_a use_n of_o all_o god_n deal_n with_o we_o that_o our_o soul_n may_v receive_v profit_n and_o comfort_v thereby_o if_o we_o do_v live_v in_o sad_a and_o mournful_a time_n when_o we_o can_v scarce_o see_v any_o thing_n but_o oppression_n injustice_n rapine_n and_o wrong_n 3_o wrong_n ps_n 82._o 2_o 3_o when_o the_o judge_n judge_v unjust_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v and_o accept_v the_o person_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o do_v not_o defend_v the_o poor_a and_o fatherless_a nor_o do_v justice_n to_o the_o afflict_a and_o needy_a when_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v under_o affliction_n and_o tear_v in_o piece_n by_o persecutor_n and_o spoiler_n with_o sect_n and_o schism_n and_o the_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n corrupt_v with_o humane_a invention_n or_o else_o tread_v down_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o unjust_a man_n then_o be_v the_o time_n to_o live_v by_o faith_n and_o to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n with_o firm_a hope_n that_o god_n will_v arise_v as_o the_o same_o psalmist_n say_v and_o judge_v the_o earth_n and_o will_v send_v deliverance_n to_o his_o church_n in_o his_o good_a time_n and_o that_o he_o will_v awake_v as_o a_o giant_n out_o of_o sleep_n to_o avenge_v the_o desolation_n thereof_o and_o the_o oppression_n of_o his_o people_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o shall_v remember_v those_o that_o suffer_v in_o our_o prayer_n and_o comfort_v ourselves_o with_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n wait_v with_o patience_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o god_n when_o he_o will_v visit_v his_o people_n in_o mercy_n and_o remember_v what_o his_o church_n have_v suffer_v and_o by_o who_o to_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n among_o many_o calamity_n that_o god_n do_v sometime_o bring_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o a_o people_n to_o humble_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n to_o rouse_v they_o up_o out_o of_o security_n to_o pull_v down_o their_o pride_n and_o to_o break_v their_o stubborn_a heart_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a when_o he_o do_v take_v away_o the_o pillar_n of_o his_o church_n and_o do_v suffer_v it_o to_o be_v underpropt_v with_o weak_a mean_n for_o though_o it_o may_v stand_v for_o some_o short_a time_n yet_o it_o can_v continue_v long_o for_o if_o the_o wind_n do_v blow_v or_o the_o billow_n of_o the_o sea_n rise_v against_o it_o they_o will_v shake_v it_o and_o much_o endanger_v the_o fall_n of_o it_o this_o be_v david_n request_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o like_a case_n 1._o case_n psal_n 12._o 1._o help_v lord_n for_o the_o godly_a man_n cease_v for_o the_o faithful_a fall_n from_o among_o the_o child_n of_o man_n when_o we_o see_v these_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v we_o have_v need_n cry_v mighty_o to_o the_o god_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o his_o help_n for_o they_o be_v forerunner_n of_o great_a calamity_n but_o we_o trust_v that_o god_n will_v not_o bring_v such_o visitation_n upon_o we_o but_o that_o he_o will_v pity_v we_o as_o a_o father_n pity_v his_o child_n upon_o his_o submission_n to_o his_o will_n though_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o rebellion_n against_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n we_o have_v deserve_v no_o pity_n now_o then_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o consider_v thou_o will_v find_v that_o whatsoever_o thy_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v that_o sorrow_n and_o trouble_n will_v daily_o attend_v thou_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o thy_o nature_n will_v break_v out_o upon_o thou_o to_o make_v thou_o fail_v of_o thy_o duty_n to_o god_n to_o make_v thou_o yield_v to_o sinful_a motion_n and_o to_o fall_v sometime_o into_o gross_a sin_n and_o so_o to_o loose_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o favour_n which_o do_v more_o perplex_v the_o soul_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a than_o to_o suffer_v the_o great_a misery_n but_o here_o be_v thy_o comfort_n that_o if_o thou_o have_v faith_n in_o christ_n thou_o will_v rest_v upon_o he_o for_o he_o will_v support_v thou_o in_o all_o thy_o sorrow_n he_o will_v free_v thou_o from_o all_o thy_o sin_n and_o will_v procure_v thy_o pardon_n upon_o thy_o true_a repentance_n and_o he_o will_v bring_v thou_o again_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n nothing_o can_v make_v thou_o so_o unhappy_a and_o so_o comfortless_a but_o that_o true_a faith_n well_o ground_v upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n will_v take_v away_o the_o apprehension_n of_o thy_o unhappiness_n and_o will_v give_v thou_o true_a consolation_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o in_o christ_n six_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o comfort_v in_o all_o the_o pious_a action_n of_o our_o life_n for_o by_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n god_n will_v accept_v for_o his_o sake_n both_o of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o work_n whether_o they_o be_v work_n of_o piety_n to_o god_n or_o work_n of_o charity_n to_o our_o neighbour_n that_o our_o work_n may_v be_v such_o as_o god_n require_v first_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v be_v our_o rule_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o frame_v our_o action_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o conceit_n of_o our_o own_o fancy_n second_o our_o work_n must_v be_v such_o as_o come_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o our_o call_n either_o public_a or_o private_a otherwise_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v they_o 7_o they_o ●_o sam._n 6._o 7_o vzzah_n be_v strike_v dead_a for_o stay_v the_o ark_n when_o it_o be_v shake_v in_o the_o cart_n because_o he_o have_v no_o call_n for_o it_o god_n require_v that_o we_o shall_v teach_v instruct_v and_o admonish_v our_o child_n and_o servant_n in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n but_o if_o we_o presume_v to_o execute_v the_o office_n and_o function_n of_o the_o minister_n without_o a_o lawful_a call_n thereunto_o god_n may_v set_v his_o mark_n upon_o we_o for_o our_o presumption_n 26._o presumption_n 2_o chro._n 26._o as_o he_o do_v upon_o king_n vzziah_n for_o go_v in_o to_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o burn_v incense_n upon_o the_o altar_n which_o pertain_v not_o unto_o he_o to_o do_v three_o we_o must_v take_v the_o time_n and_o opportunity_n that_o god_n give_v we_o for_o any_o good_a action_n and_o not_o to_o put_v it_o off_o with_o delay_n for_o that_o be_v the_o time_n which_o he_o will_v accept_v god_n have_v set_v a_o part_n one_o day_n in_o seven_o for_o his_o peculiar_a service_n and_o for_o good_a work_n which_o be_v the_o lord_n day_n and_o that_o day_n must_v be_v whole_o sanctify_v to_o he_o four_o our_o adoption_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v strong_o move_v we_o to_o perform_v good_a work_n and_o holy_a duty_n out_o of_o a_o filial_a love_n to_o god_n and_o not_o out_o of_o a_o slavish_a fear_n to_o do_v they_o willing_o in_o obedience_n to_o god_n command_n and_o not_o upon_o constraint_n also_o with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n and_o not_o with_o a_o blind_a devotion_n 24._o devotion_n act_n 17._o 24._o like_o the_o athenian_n who_o worship_v a_o unknown_a god_n 9_o god_n 1_o chro._n 18._o 9_o david_n do_v counsel_v his_o son_n solomon_n to_o worship_n god_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n for_o god_n accept_v freewill_n offering_n but_o if_o we_o be_v force_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n like_o slave_n for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n our_o service_n will_v not_o be_v well_o accept_v five_o faith_n will_v make_v we_o do_v all_o our_o religious_a duty_n with_o cheerful_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 15._o god_n psal_n 35._o 15._o for_o the_o lord_n consider_v all_o our_o work_n thus_o god_n say_v by_o solomon_n 26._o solomon_n prov._n 23._o 26._o my_o son_n give_v i_o thy_o heart_n and_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 7._o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 9_o 7._o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n last_o faith_n will_v make_v we_o constant_a in_o well-doing_n which_o will_v crown_v all_o our_o good_a action_n with_o gracious_a acceptation_n so_o that_o we_o have_v respect_n 6._o respect_n psal_n 119._o 6._o as_o holy_a david_n have_v to_o all_o god_n commandment_n then_o if_o we_o do_v our_o best_a endeavour_n in_o god_n service_n though_o we_o fail_v of_o our_o
duty_n or_o fall_v through_o frailty_n and_o infirmity_n 4._o infirmity_n hos_fw-la 14._o 4._o god_n in_o mercy_n will_v heal_v our_o backslide_n and_o will_v accept_v of_o our_o imperfect_a performance_n because_o we_o have_v relation_n un_fw-fr to_o christ_n by_o faith_n now_o than_o if_o we_o will_v strict_o examine_v the_o action_n of_o our_o life_n by_o those_o former_a direction_n we_o shall_v easy_o find_v whether_o our_o work_n and_o service_n to_o god_n have_v be_v such_o as_o he_o require_v and_o perform_v according_a to_o his_o will_n that_o we_o may_v have_v peace_n of_o conscience_n in_o they_o here_o and_o eternal_a comfort_n by_o they_o hereafter_o if_o we_o can_v find_v by_o this_o inquiry_n that_o our_o work_n have_v be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o we_o have_v do_v our_o duty_n to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o not_o out_o of_o pride_n or_o vainglory_n to_o get_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n as_o the_o hypocrite_n do_v or_o to_o any_o other_o by-end_n than_o our_o faith_n will_v shine_v forth_o in_o our_o work_n and_o god_n will_v gracious_o accept_v they_o but_o if_o the_o action_n of_o our_o life_n have_v be_v evil_a they_o will_v follow_v we_o for_o evil_a when_o we_o lie_v down_o and_o when_o we_o rise_v up_o and_o whithersoever_o we_o go_v if_o we_o sleep_v or_o wake_v they_o will_v molest_v and_o trouble_v we_o they_o will_v aggravate_v our_o sorrow_n in_o our_o affliction_n and_o our_o pain_n in_o sickness_n they_o will_v embitter_v all_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o life_n and_o increase_v the_o fear_n and_o terror_n of_o death_n for_o they_o will_v come_v into_o our_o remembrance_n when_o we_o lie_v upon_o our_o deathbed_n to_o vex_v and_o terrify_v our_o very_a soul_n and_o to_o make_v we_o uncapable_a of_o any_o heavenly_a consolation_n until_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v to_o they_o be_v take_v away_o by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n also_o 13_o also_o rev._n 14._o 13_o our_o evil_a work_n will_v follow_v we_o unto_o judgement_n to_o accuse_v we_o before_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a judge_n 13_o judge_n rev._n 20._o 13_o and_o then_o god_n will_v judge_v we_o according_a to_o they_o if_o they_o be_v find_v wicked_a and_o sinful_a we_o can_v but_o expect_v the_o dreadful_a sentence_n of_o condemnation_n to_o be_v pronounce_v against_o we_o also_o after_o judgement_n they_o will_v increase_v our_o torment_n in_o hell_n if_o we_o do_v not_o prevent_v it_o in_o time_n by_o our_o true_a repentance_n while_o we_o live_v here_o in_o this_o life_n last_o faith_n will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o a_o bless_a and_o a_o comfortable_a death_n for_o by_o it_o we_o shall_v steer_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o life_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o 10._o of_o col._n 1._o 10._o god_n &_o it_o will_v make_v we_o fruitful_a in_o every_o good_a work_n that_o they_o may_v be_v right_o do_v both_o for_o the_o matter_n and_o for_o the_o manner_n and_o also_o to_o the_o right_a end_n as_o god_n have_v appoint_v they_o we_o can_v then_o but_o live_v virtuous_o and_o pious_o in_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v reward_v we_o of_o his_o free_a bounty_n and_o goodness_n though_o not_o of_o merit_n god_n will_v remember_v our_o work_n if_o they_o be_v do_v in_o sincerity_n and_o in_o truth_n to_o comfort_v we_o in_o the_o sadness_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o ease_v we_o in_o the_o extremity_n of_o pain_n and_o sickness_n and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o peaceable_a and_o a_o quiet_a conscience_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n before_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n shall_v come_v upon_o we_o such_o good_a work_n will_v adorn_v our_o profession_n and_o make_v our_o life_n comfortable_a to_o we_o and_o our_o conversation_n suitable_a to_o our_o profession_n and_o they_o will_v follow_v we_o for_o our_o good_a whithersoever_o we_o go_v for_o there_o be_v no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v to_o they_o because_o christ_n have_v take_v it_o a_o way_n whereof_o we_o be_v full_o persuade_v by_o faith_n 14._o faith_n neh._n 13._o 14._o if_o we_o can_v with_o good_a nehemiah_n put_v god_n in_o remembrance_n of_o our_o good_a deed_n how_o will_v it_o strengthen_v our_o hope_n and_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o his_o protection_n in_o all_o danger_n for_o his_o help_n and_o succour_v in_o all_o our_o distress_n and_o for_o his_o assistance_n when_o we_o undertake_v any_o special_a business_n what_o sweet_a consolation_n will_v it_o be_v to_o we_o when_o we_o be_v upon_o our_o deathbed_n if_o with_o a_o clear_a conscience_n we_o can_v put_v god_n in_o mind_n 3._o mind_n isa_n 38._o 3._o as_o king_n hezekiah_n do_v that_o we_o have_v walk_v before_o he_o in_o truth_n and_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o his_o sight_n if_o we_o thus_o live_v and_o thus_o die_v we_o may_v then_o say_v with_o paul_n 8._o paul_n rom._n 14_o 8._o whether_o we_o live_v we_o live_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o whether_o we_o die_v we_o die_v unto_o the_o lord_n whether_o we_o live_v therefore_o or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n 13._o lord_n rev._n 14._o 13._o john_n hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o he_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o yea_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o their_o work_n do_v follow_v they_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o their_o condition_n be_v most_o bless_a because_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o do_v affirm_v it_o we_o have_v also_o great_a encouragement_n to_o be_v fruitful_a in_o good_a work_n because_o they_o will_v go_v with_o we_o even_o to_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n for_o christ_n have_v fasten_v they_o to_o our_o soul_n that_o god_n may_v then_o look_v upon_o they_o and_o remember_v they_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o joy_n and_o happiness_n hereafter_o if_o we_o do_v now_o ruminate_v well_o upon_o all_o these_o several_a excellent_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n that_o come_v by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n in_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n we_o may_v draw_v sweet_a and_o heavenly_a meditation_n from_o thence_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o against_o eternal_a condemnation_n for_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o hereby_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n who_o have_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o from_o whatsoever_o our_o sin_n have_v make_v we_o liable_a unto_o and_o have_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o the_o pollution_n and_o defilement_n of_o sin_n he_o have_v make_v we_o the_o adopt_a son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v give_v we_o all_o the_o privilege_n that_o do_v belong_v unto_o son_n also_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o by_o christ_n we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o have_v right_a to_o all_o the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o will_v sweet_o refresh_v our_o soul_n in_o all_o fear_n and_o doubt_n in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n in_o all_o extremity_n and_o distress_n if_o we_o can_v apply_v they_o to_o our_o soul_n by_o faith_n and_o rest_n upon_o they_o with_o steadfast_a hope_n wherefore_o let_v this_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o have_v a_o near_a communion_n with_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v say_v with_o the_o spouse_n 16_o spouse_n cant._n 2._o 16_o my_o belove_a be_v i_o and_o i_o be_o he_o or_o to_o say_v thus_o with_o paul_n 20._o paul_n gal._n 2._o 20._o i_o be_o crucify_v with_o christ_n nevertheless_o i_o live_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o and_o the_o life_n which_o i_o now_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n i_o live_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o this_o particular_a application_n of_o christ_n to_o ourselves_o will_v draw_v from_o he_o the_o rich_a jewel_n that_o be_v in_o his_o treasury_n the_o rich_a robe_n and_o the_o best_a garment_n that_o be_v in_o his_o wardrobe_n and_o his_o very_a heartblood_n for_o our_o redemption_n if_o we_o look_v a_o little_a low_o and_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o which_o will_v sweet_o comfort_v and_o delight_v our_o heart_n if_o we_o have_v faith_n to_o understand_v and_o believe_v what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v to_o we_o in_o they_o for_o our_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n it_o be_v
shall_v high_o prize_v our_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a grace_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o it_o make_v all_o other_o grace_n profitable_a and_o effectual_a to_o we_o according_a to_o their_o several_a nature_n our_o repentance_n be_v not_o sound_a and_o true_a if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o can_v true_o humble_v ourselves_o before_o god_n and_o free_o confess_v our_o sin_n unto_o he_o with_o a_o contrite_a heart_n if_o we_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o our_o merciful_a father_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v have_v good_a hope_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n neither_o can_v we_o show_v any_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n by_o mortify_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n death_n which_o we_o must_v draw_v to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n and_o also_o by_o our_o regeneration_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o we_o must_v also_o have_v by_o faith_n our_o repentance_n can_v give_v we_o no_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v full_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o they_o all_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n 19_o death_n lu._n 21._o 19_o we_o can_v possess_v our_o soul_n in_o patience_n when_o we_o suffer_v affliction_n and_o tribulation_n and_o when_o we_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n if_o we_o do_v not_o belive_o that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v our_o suffering_n to_o make_v they_o work_v for_o our_o good_a and_o that_o 22_o that_o act._n 14._o 22_o through_o much_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o can_v love_v god_n with_o true_a filial_a love_n nor_o obey_v he_o with_o filial_a reverence_n and_o fear_n if_o we_o be_v not_o persuade_v of_o our_o adoption_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n 42_o faith_n mat._n 10._o 42_o our_o work_n of_o charity_n will_v not_o be_v accept_v unless_o they_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n as_o to_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v not_o lose_v our_o reward_n thus_o do_v faith_n put_v life_n and_o vigour_n into_o all_o other_o grace_n to_o make_v they_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a for_o our_o sanctification_n and_o for_o the_o spiritual_a comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o be_v a_o special_a consideration_n to_o make_v we_o account_v of_o our_o faith_n as_o a_o principal_a grace_n without_o which_o we_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n three_o 46_o three_o mat._n 13._o 46_o faith_n be_v that_o pearl_n of_o great_a price_n which_o the_o merchant_n man_n in_o the_o gospel_n find_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o buy_v it_o for_o no_o humane_a learning_n no_o ability_n of_o nature_n no_o wealth_n or_o riches_n can_v purchase_v we_o must_v renounce_v our_o trust_n in_o all_o these_o before_o we_o can_v buy_v this_o rich_a pearl_n for_o it_o be_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n to_o attain_v unto_o it_o and_o no_o power_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n can_v procure_v it_o but_o we_o must_v have_v it_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o keep_v it_o in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o we_o may_v have_v it_o of_o he_o without_o money_n and_o without_o price_n if_o in_o the_o true_a humiliation_n of_o our_o spirit_n we_o beg_v it_o of_o he_o but_o if_o we_o seek_v to_o buy_v this_o pearl_n of_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v pay_v dear_a for_o it_o and_o yet_o not_o have_v the_o right_a pearl_n the_o lustre_n of_o these_o pearl_n can_v reach_v no_o further_o than_o to_o the_o object_n of_o the_o eye_n but_o the_o lustre_n of_o this_o true_a oriental_a pearl_n will_v shine_v in_o all_o dark_a place_n of_o woe_n and_o misery_n and_o it_o will_v pierce_v the_o very_a heaven_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n himself_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v so_o high_o value_v the_o pearl_n that_o nature_n or_o this_o world_n do_v afford_v we_o that_o we_o will_v take_v any_o pain_n or_o be_v at_o any_o cost_n to_o gain_v some_o of_o they_o though_o they_o be_v of_o no_o worth_a to_o rest_v upon_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o spiritual_a misery_n whatsoever_o but_o as_o for_o this_o precious_a pearl_n we_o be_v loath_a to_o part_v with_o any_o thing_n for_o it_o that_o by_o nature_n be_v near_o or_o dear_a to_o we_o or_o wherein_o we_o take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n thus_o we_o delude_v ourselves_o with_o vain_a hope_n and_o we_o rest_v upon_o that_o which_o can_v help_v because_o we_o know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o true_a faith_n to_o make_v it_o the_o instrument_n of_o our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n through_o christ_n let_v this_o consideration_n also_o advance_v the_o estimation_n of_o faith_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n because_o by_o it_o we_o gain_v christ_n with_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o in_o christ_n we_o gain_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o assurance_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n wherefore_o if_o this_o be_v the_o transcendent_a worth_n of_o true_a faith_n we_o shall_v then_o with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n seek_v out_o where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o obtain_v it_o if_o god_n see_v this_o holy_a desire_n in_o we_o he_o will_v then_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v by_o his_o spirit_n that_o this_o rich_a pearl_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o his_o own_o cabinet_n also_o he_o will_v prepare_v our_o heart_n and_o our_o will_n for_o it_o he_o will_v anoint_v our_o eye_n with_o spiritual_a eyesalve_n to_o find_v it_o and_o he_o will_v direct_v we_o to_o the_o mean_n how_o we_o may_v obtain_v it_o first_o therefore_o we_o must_v know_v 8._o know_v eph_n 2._o 8._o 8._o that_o faith_n be_v only_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o who_o be_v please_v 19_o please_v eph._n 1._o 19_o and_o he_o work_v it_o in_o we_o by_o his_o mighty_a power_n second_o god_n will_v give_v we_o heart_n to_o seek_v it_o of_o he_o by_o fervent_a prayer_n which_o be_v a_o powerful_a mean_n to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n three_o his_o spirit_n will_v go_v along_o with_o the_o preach_v of_o his_o word_n that_o if_o we_o hear_v it_o with_o sincere_a affection_n it_o may_v work_v faith_n in_o we_o 17._o we_o rom._n 10._o 17._o for_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n last_o when_o we_o have_v find_v this_o precious_a pearl_n in_o his_o word_n god_n will_v make_v we_o willing_a to_o buy_v it_o though_o we_o give_v for_o it_o our_o soul_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n thereof_o our_o heart_n our_o affection_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n all_o which_o must_v be_v give_v up_o to_o the_o lord_n or_o else_o we_o can_v enjoy_v true_a faith_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o we_o must_v empty_v ourselves_o of_o all_o conceit_n of_o our_o own_o worth_n and_o quite_o renounce_v all_o confidence_n in_o worldly_a thing_n all_o sinful_a pleasure_n and_o every_o sin_n that_o press_v we_o down_o or_o that_o cleave_v close_o to_o we_o or_o else_o we_o can_v obtain_v this_o precious_a pearl_n of_o god_n four_o we_o may_v conceive_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o great_a estimation_n because_o it_o be_v so_o rare_o find_v upon_o earth_n thus_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n concern_v faith_n 8._o faith_n lu._n 18._o 8._o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v such_o a_o rare_a jewel_n as_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v find_v few_o do_v enjoy_v it_o and_o none_o can_v right_o esteem_v of_o it_o but_o only_o such_o as_o have_v it_o 17._o it_o rev._n 2._o 17._o christ_n promise_v to_o give_v a_o white_a stone_n to_o he_o that_o overcome_v and_o in_o this_o stone_n a_o new_a name_n be_v write_v which_o no_o man_n know_v save_v he_o that_o receive_v it_o we_o can_v obtain_v this_o white_a stone_n of_o purity_n righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n but_o by_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v this_o white_a stone_n also_o we_o shall_v know_v this_o new_a name_n that_o be_v write_v in_o it_o for_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v put_v on_o christ_n and_o shall_v be_v make_v new_a creature_n to_o live_v as_o become_v new_a christian_n in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o in_o uprightness_n of_o conversation_n it_o be_v true_a which_o paul_n say_v 2._o say_v 2_o thes_n 3._o 2._o that_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n for_o there_o be_v so_o much_o wickedness_n fraud_n deceit_n and_o unbelief_n among_o man_n that_o true_a faith_n can_v hardly_o be_v find_v be_v it_o be_v
the_o comfort_n of_o the_o soul_n lay_v down_o by_o way_n of_o meditation_n upon_o some_o head_n of_o christian_a religion_n very_o profitable_a for_o every_o true_a christian_a compose_v and_o write_v by_o john_n anthony_n of_o london_n doctor_n of_o physic_n psal_n 19_o ver_fw-la 14._o let_v the_o word_n of_o my_o mouth_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o my_o heart_n be_v always_o acceptable_a in_o thy_o sight_n o_o lord_n my_o strength_n and_o my_o redeemer_n london_n print_v for_o g._n dawson_n and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v by_o john_n montague_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o white-dragon_n in_o ducklane_n 1654._o i_o have_v peruse_v these_o divine_a meditation_n entitle_v the_o comfort_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o do_v find_v they_o to_o be_v so_o orthodox_n and_o solid_a pious_a and_o profitable_a that_o i_o do_v approve_v they_o well_o worthy_a to_o be_v print_v and_o publish_v john_n downame_n to_o the_o right_n honourable_a dame_n elizabeth_n dygby_n baronesse_n of_o geshal_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n grace_n mercy_n and_o peace_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v nothing_o of_o i_o own_o that_o be_v worthy_a your_o acceptance_n to_o express_v my_o cordial_a respect_n and_o thankfulness_n for_o those_o many_o favour_n which_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o you_o i_o have_v take_v some_o spiritual_a receipt_n out_o of_o god_n sacred_a dispensatory_a which_o i_o be_o bold_a to_o present_v or_o dedicate_v to_o your_o honour_n because_o they_o be_v special_a cordial_n for_o the_o spirit_n and_o precious_a antidote_n against_o the_o evil_a of_o sad_a time_n wherein_o also_o you_o will_v find_v some_o balm_n of_o gilead_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o all_o spiritual_a disease_n if_o it_o be_v apply_v close_o to_o the_o part_n that_o be_v ill_o affect_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n if_o these_o thing_n do_v relish_v well_o with_o your_o spiritual_a palate_n than_o i_o be_o confident_a you_o will_v take_v sometime_o to_o ruminate_v hereupon_o for_o i_o know_v it_o have_v be_v your_o constant_a course_n to_o meditate_v something_o daily_o of_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n which_o do_v strong_o induce_v i_o to_o present_v these_o unripe_a fruit_n of_o my_o labour_n to_o you_o which_o i_o gather_v in_o my_o old_a age_n for_o my_o own_o use_n according_a to_o my_o first_o intention_n though_o i_o have_v thus_o labour_v out_o of_o my_o call_v as_o i_o be_o a_o physician_n yet_o i_o be_o not_o out_o of_o my_o profession_n as_o i_o be_o a_o christian_n now_o see_v this_o work_n be_v come_v to_o public_a view_n i_o do_v humble_o desire_v your_o favourable_a construction_n of_o the_o frailty_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o that_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o vindicate_v it_o from_o carp_a spirit_n for_o i_o do_v not_o write_v it_o to_o please_v their_o curiosity_n but_o to_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v those_o that_o do_v any_o way_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o spiritual_a consolation_n if_o any_o thing_n herein_o can_v give_v you_o any_o reasonable_a satisfaction_n let_v god_n have_v the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o own_o work_n and_o i_o shall_v great_o rejoice_v therein_o and_o shall_v still_o remain_v your_o much_o oblige_a servant_n john_n anthony_n to_o the_o reader_n courteous_a reader_n if_o thou_o do_v live_v under_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v sensible_a of_o these_o sad_a time_n or_o if_o god_n visitation_n be_v upon_o thou_o which_o make_v thou_o to_o sigh_v and_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n and_o pressure_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n so_o that_o thy_o soul_n desire_v comfort_n and_o thy_o spirit_n want_v spiritual_a refresh_n and_o heavenly_a consolation_n then_o i_o have_v write_v this_o treatise_n for_o thou_o which_o i_o present_v to_o thy_o view_n wherein_o thou_o shall_v find_v the_o true_a way_n how_o to_o demean_v thyself_o under_o god_n visitation_n how_o to_o bear_v thy_o cross_n with_o a_o content_a patience_n how_o to_o make_v the_o burden_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n more_o easy_a or_o how_o to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o they_o if_o god_n see_v it_o to_o be_v most_o for_o his_o glory_n and_o best_a for_o thy_o good_a also_o how_o to_o refresh_v thy_o spirit_n and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n in_o what_o kind_n soever_o it_o be_v afflict_v here_o also_o thou_o shall_v find_v that_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n have_v suffer_v as_o great_a affliction_n as_o thou_o can_v and_o yet_o god_n do_v send_v they_o comfort_v and_o deliverance_n but_o special_o what_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n have_v suffer_v for_o thou_o and_o what_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n thou_o may_v have_v by_o it_o if_o thou_o can_v draw_v it_o to_o thyself_o and_o make_v a_o particular_a application_n of_o it_o to_o thy_o own_o sorrowful_a condition_n without_o which_o it_o will_v yield_v thou_o but_o small_a consolation_n in_o thy_o misery_n if_o thou_o do_v meet_v with_o any_o thing_n here_o that_o will_v fit_v thy_o present_a condition_n either_o for_o edification_n or_o for_o comfort_n thou_o must_v ruminate_v well_o upon_o it_o to_o suck_v out_o the_o spiritual_a jui●e_n to_o imprint_v it_o in_o thy_o mind_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o close_o home_o to_o thy_o heart_n that_o it_o may_v comfort_v thy_o soul_n and_o cure_v thy_o wound_a spirit_n david_n find_v great_a comfort_n when_o he_o do_v meditate_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n my_o soul_n say_v he_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v as_o with_o marrow_n and_o fatness_n and_o my_o mouth_n shall_v praise_v thou_o with_o joyful_a 6_o psal_n 63._o 5_o 6_o lip_n when_o i_o remember_v thou_o upon_o my_o bed_n and_o meditate_v on_o thou_o in_o the_o night_n watch_v and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o for_o this_o be_v a_o duty_n which_o god_n require_v and_o he_o take_v special_a notice_n of_o those_o that_o do_v practice_n it_o to_o pour_v down_o his_o blessing_n upon_o they_o as_o he_o do_v upon_o isaac_n who_o go_v out_o daily_o into_o the_o field_n to_o meditate_v 64._o gen._n 24._o 63_o 64._o upon_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n and_o then_o at_o that_o very_a time_n god_n send_v he_o a_o virtuous_a wife_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n go_v along_o with_o thou_o in_o thy_o holy_a meditation_n they_o can_v but_o be_v comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n thou_o will_v then_o conceive_v aright_o of_o the_o secret_a and_o hide_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o thou_o will_v see_v the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o creature_n his_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n to_o thou_o in_o they_o and_o a_o glimpse_n of_o the_o majesty_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o great_a creator_n god_n almighty_n his_o holy_a spirit_n will_v also_o open_v thy_o heart_n to_o let_v in_o whatsoever_o spiritual_a good_a thou_o reape_v by_o thy_o pious_a meditation_n for_o if_o thou_o look_v upon_o the_o creature_n and_o do_v not_o meditate_v something_o of_o god_n in_o it_o thou_o do_v look_v upon_o it_o in_o vain_a and_o if_o thou_o read_v or_o hear_v his_o word_n preach_v and_o do_v not_o settle_v it_o upon_o thy_o affection_n by_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o thou_o can_v not_o edify_v thy_o heart_n nor_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n thereby_o so_o likewise_o if_o thou_o do_v read_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o treatise_n that_o be_v comfortable_a to_o poor_a deject_a spirit_n it_o will_v not_o comfort_v thou_o if_o it_o be_v not_o well_o digest_v in_o thy_o heart_n and_o apply_v to_o thy_o own_o soul_n if_o thou_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o this_o holy_a duty_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o some_o direction_n how_o to_o perform_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o do_v first_o practice_n it_o upon_o thyself_o to_o meditate_v upon_o thy_o own_o condition_n what_o thou_o be_v by_o nature_n and_o what_o by_o grace_n and_o consider_v serious_o in_o thy_o thought_n what_o way_n thou_o walk_v what_o step_v thou_o tread_v and_o to_o what_o end_n thy_o way_n do_v tend_v thou_o will_v not_o only_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thyself_o but_o thou_o will_v also_o learn_v how_o to_o meditate_v profitable_o and_o comfortable_o upon_o god_n thy_o creator_n upon_o jesus_n christ_n thy_o redeemer_n and_o upon_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thy_o sanctifier_n and_o comforter_n i_o conclude_v with_o this_o say_n of_o a_o ancient_a father_n nothing_o be_v find_v more_o sweet_a in_o this_o life_n nothing_o be_v conceive_v more_o comfortable_a nothing_o do_v so_o separate_v the_o affection_n from_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n nothing_o do_v so_o fortify_v the_o mind_n against_o temptation_n nothing_o do_v so_o stir_v up_o man_n and_o further_o he_o to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o duty_n as_o the_o grace_n and_o benefit_n of_o divine_a meditation_n and_o heavenly_a contemplation_n thou_o in_o the_o lord_n christ_n john_n anthony_n a_o table_n of_o these_o several_a head_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n meditation_n be_v a_o duty_n
be_v so_o well_o dispose_v for_o such_o a_o heavenly_a duty_n or_o else_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o suggest_v unto_o he_o evil_a thought_n or_o to_o bring_v into_o his_o remembrance_n some_o of_o his_o former_a sin_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o his_o conscience_n to_o trouble_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o so_o to_o interrupt_v his_o thought_n that_o his_o meditation_n may_v not_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o fruitful_a and_o profitable_a to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v crave_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n rule_n of_o direction_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n wherefore_o now_o that_o our_o meditation_n may_v be_v holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o that_o we_o may_v find_v sweetness_n and_o comfort_n in_o they_o we_o must_v careful_o observe_v these_o few_o direction_n follow_v the_o first_o be_v to_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o holy_a thing_n and_o not_o upon_o that_o which_o be_v vain_a and_o unprofitable_a for_o they_o do_v most_o conduce_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v paul_n counsel_n 2_o counsel_n col._n 3._o 1_o 2_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n on_o thing_n above_o not_o on_o thing_n on_o the_o earth_n whereby_o we_o shall_v give_v a_o clear_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n as_o our_o affection_n be_v carry_v so_o be_v our_o meditation_n if_o they_o be_v carry_v to_o worldly_a vanity_n our_o mind_n will_v be_v so_o encumber_a that_o we_o can_v free_o meditate_v upon_o those_o thing_n that_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n neither_o will_v our_o meditation_n be_v for_o god_n glory_n or_o for_o our_o eternal_a good_a but_o if_o our_o affection_n be_v carry_v towards_o heavenly_a thing_n than_o our_o meditation_n will_v be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a and_o our_o action_n will_v be_v tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n 3._o god_n 1_o chron._n 29._o 3._o david_n set_v his_o affection_n to_o the_o house_n of_o his_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o prepare_v abundant_o of_o his_o own_o proper_a good_a of_o gold_n and_o silver_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o build_n of_o it_o wherefore_o it_o concern_v we_o very_o much_o to_o keep_v our_o heart_n close_o unto_o god_n that_o our_o mind_n may_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o he_o in_o our_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v in_o all_o our_o action_n the_o second_o direction_n be_v that_o our_o meditation_n must_v be_v of_o the_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o brain_n otherwise_o this_o duty_n be_v not_o so_o perform_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o it_o be_v the_o heart_n which_o god_n respect_v in_o all_o our_o service_n to_o he_o without_o which_o our_o best_a duty_n be_v not_o regard_v 19_o regard_v luk._n 2._o 19_o the_o bless_a virgin_n keep_v all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o shepherd_n and_o other_o concern_v christ_n and_o ponder_v they_o in_o her_o heart_n oh_o how_o acceptable_a be_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n with_o a_o pure_a and_o perfect_a heart_n how_o effectual_a be_v that_o prayer_n which_o be_v present_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o true_a and_o faithful_a heart_n how_o please_a be_v those_o alm_n to_o god_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a with_o a_o willing_a heart_n and_o how_o comfortable_a be_v those_o meditation_n which_o proceed_v from_o a_o upright_a heart_n the_o brain_n may_v work_v and_o the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o mind_n may_v be_v set_v upon_o holy_a object_n and_o all_o to_o little_a purpose_n if_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v want_v three_o the_o end_n of_o our_o meditation_n must_v crown_v the_o work_n with_o gracious_a acceptance_n and_o this_o must_v be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o do_v great_o honour_v god_n in_o our_o meditation_n when_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o his_o incomprehensible_a essence_n how_o infinite_a he_o be_v in_o all_o his_o divine_a attribute_n and_o how_o wonderful_a in_o all_o his_o work_n also_o when_o we_o meditate_v upon_o his_o law_n and_o upon_o his_o gracious_a promise_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n if_o hereby_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o reverence_n and_o adore_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n to_o love_v he_o for_o his_o goodness_n and_o to_o yield_v due_a obedience_n unto_o his_o command_n and_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v upon_o his_o promise_n and_o discern_v his_o wisdom_n and_o glory_n by_o his_o work_n this_o must_v be_v the_o main_a end_n of_o our_o meditation_n and_o if_o we_o do_v serious_o meditate_v upon_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n to_o a_o holy_a end_n than_o god_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v edify_v by_o they_o but_o if_o we_o propound_v any_o other_o end_n to_o ourselves_o whether_o it_o be_v for_o discourse_n or_o vainglory_n or_o the_o like_a we_o seek_v not_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n herein_o but_o we_o delude_v ourselves_o and_o defraud_v our_o soul_n of_o that_o heavenly_a comfort_n which_o otherwise_o they_o may_v have_v four_o our_o heart_n and_o conscience_n must_v be_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o dead_a work_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o a_o holy_a zeal_n may_v be_v kindle_v in_o our_o affection_n and_o that_o our_o soul_n may_v feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o a_o spiritual_a warmth_n by_o our_o holy_a meditation_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v fast_o to_o our_o conscience_n because_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n by_o repentance_n that_o it_o be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n it_o will_v cool_v the_o zeal_n of_o our_o affection_n and_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o god_n assist_v grace_n so_o that_o our_o meditation_n can_v make_v no_o holy_a impression_n in_o our_o heart_n no_o print_n of_o piety_n in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n neither_o can_v they_o send_v forth_o any_o beam_n of_o true_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n our_o meditation_n can_v be_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n nor_o to_o our_o own_o spiritual_a good_a neither_o can_v we_o say_v as_o the_o psalmist_n do_v 34._o do_v psal_n 104_o 34._o my_o meditation_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v sweet_a i_o will_v be_v glad_a in_o the_o lord_n this_o will_v move_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o will_v put_v a_o spiritual_a life_n into_o our_o meditation_n when_o our_o heart_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o we_o can_v free_o meditate_v upon_o the_o bounty_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o deal_n with_o we_o this_o we_o may_v do_v if_o faith_n go_v along_o in_o all_o our_o holy_a meditation_n five_o we_o must_v have_v some_o spiritual_a understanding_n in_o those_o thing_n whereon_o we_o desire_v to_o meditate_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v guide_v we_o in_o our_o meditation_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v glorify_v god_n and_o comfort_v our_o soul_n thereby_o otherwise_o the_o thought_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v wander_v and_o go_v far_o astray_o from_o the_o matter_n whereupon_o they_o shall_v be_v fix_v and_o we_o may_v easy_o lose_v ourselves_o in_o the_o dark_a if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o give_v we_o some_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v we_o therein_o and_o we_o can_v receive_v no_o benefit_n by_o this_o holy_a service_n if_o it_o be_v not_o perform_v with_o a_o understand_a heart_n the_o more_o knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o what_o we_o intend_v to_o meditate_v the_o more_o will_v our_o heart_n be_v enlarge_v for_o it_o and_o the_o deep_a impression_n will_v our_o meditation_n make_v in_o our_o affection_n and_o the_o great_a will_v be_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o say_n of_o the_o psalmist_n 3._o psalmist_n psal_n 49._o 3._o the_o meditation_n of_o my_o heart_n shall_v be_v of_o understanding_n thus_o say_v paul_n 15_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 15_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o th●_n spirit_n and_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o so_o likewise_o we_o must_v meditate_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o with_o the_o understanding_n also_o how_o can_v we_o learn_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o how_o can_v we_o keep_v his_o law_n if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o give_v we_o understanding_n in_o they_o by_o his_o spirit_n this_o heavenly_a wisdom_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o we_o must_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n labour_v for_o according_a to_o this_o of_o solomon_n 7._o solomon_n prov._n 4._o 7._o wisdom_n be_v the_o principal_a thing_n therefore_o get_v wisdom_n and_o with_o all_o
affection_n with_o holy_a desire_n to_o embrace_v he_o 7_o he_o psal_n 24._o 7_o and_o to_o set_v open_a the_o gate_n and_o door_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o this_o king_n of_o glory_n may_v come_v in_o and_o dwell_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o if_o we_o do_v sincere_o from_o the_o heart_n desire_v such_o a_o glorious_a king_n and_o such_o a_o bountiful_a inhabitant_n to_o make_v his_o perpetual_a abode_n with_o we_o than_o we_o must_v press_v hard_a upon_o he_o and_o importune_v he_o earnest_o with_o our_o frequent_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o we_o 3._o we_o gen._n 19_o 2_o 3._o the_o two_o angel_n that_o come_v to_o sodom_n refuse_v to_o tarry_v all_o night_n with_o lot_n upon_o his_o first_o entreaty_n but_o when_o he_o press_v great_o upon_o they_o they_o turn_v in_o unto_o he_o and_o enter_v into_o his_o house_n and_o he_o make_v they_o a_o feast_n and_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o then_o they_o preserve_v he_o from_o the_o burn_a but_o behold_v 20_o behold_v revel_v 3._o 20_o christ_n stand_v at_o the_o door_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o knock_n if_o we_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o door_n he_o will_v come_v in_o to_o we_o and_o will_v sup_v with_o we_o we_o shall_v sup_v with_o he_o o_o the_o happiness_n of_o that_o soul_n that_o do_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o call_v and_o do_v open_v his_o heart_n unto_o he_o when_o he_o knock_v either_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n by_o the_o motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o affliction_n trouble_n cross_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o but_o if_o we_o will_v entertain_v christ_n we_o must_v have_v no_o corrival_n with_o he_o for_o god_n and_o mammon_n christ_n and_o belial_n can_v dwell_v together_o thus_o say_v christ_n 13_o christ_n luk._n 26_o 13_o you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n for_o no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o master_n also_o thus_o say_v paul_n 15_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 14_o 15_o what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n and_o what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n 37._o belial_n mat._n 10_o 37._o if_o we_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n son_n or_o daughtor_n more_o than_o christ_n we_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o he_o if_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v carry_v after_o the_o riches_n preferment_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n or_o after_o any_o darling_n sin_n then_o christ_n will_v not_o dwell_v there_o and_o we_o lose_v the_o comfortable_a and_o bless_a presence_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o rich_a endowment_n for_o that_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n wherefore_o now_o we_o may_v meditate_v comfortable_o on_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n for_o the_o terriblenesse_n of_o his_o majesty_n be_v cloud_v with_o the_o vail_n of_o his_o goodness_n the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n be_v sweeten_v with_o his_o mercy_n and_o tender_a compassion_n christ_n have_v take_v our_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o have_v put_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v keep_v for_o true_a blessedness_n to_o all_o eternity_n if_o his_o greatness_n do_v affright_v we_o his_o goodness_n will_v allure_v we_o if_o his_o justice_n do_v drive_v we_o from_o he_o his_o mercy_n and_o love_n will_v draw_v we_o to_o he_o for_o by_o christ_n we_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n to_o god_n himself_o either_o as_o his_o servant_n by_o grace_n or_o as_o his_o child_n by_o adoption_n in_o both_o which_o respect_v our_o meditation_n of_o he_o will_v be_v exceed_o delightful_a to_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o we_o fix_v our_o thought_n upon_o christ_n though_o his_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o humane_a capacity_n yet_o by_o faith_n we_o do_v apprehend_v he_o to_o be_v our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o advocate_n now_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n in_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o therefore_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o can_v but_o ravish_v our_o soul_n with_o heavenly_a joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o of_o our_o atonement_n with_o god_n and_o also_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n how_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a geost_fw-la be_v the_o same_o spiritual_a essence_n and_o be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o the_o son_n coequal_a and_o coeternall_a with_o they_o both_o but_o as_o the_o deity_n be_v distinguish_v into_o three_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o son_n and_o he_o be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n christ_n do_v prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n in_o these_o word_n 26_o word_n john_n 15_o 26_o but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n be_v manifest_a by_o this_o of_o paul_n 6_o paul_n gal._n 4._o 6_o and_o because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n john_n also_o the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o christ_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n by_o these_o word_n 7_o word_n 2_o joh_n 5._o 7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o a●e_n one._n the_o prophet_n call_v he_o 2_o he_o isa_n 11._o 2_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n and_o strength_n the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n 14_o lord_n heb._n 9_o 14_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o god_n from_o who_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 7_o david_n psal_n 139_o 7_o whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o sptrit_a or_o whither_o shall_v i_o flee_v from_o thy_o presence_n christ_n call_v he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 7._o truth_n joh_n 14._o 16_o 7._o and_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o forever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v john_n call_v he_o 11_o he_o rev._n 11._o 11_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n because_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n the_o do_v quicken_v our_o heart_n and_o revive_v we_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o our_o trespass_n and_o sin_n paul_n do_v also_o call_v he_o 16_o he_o rom._n 8._o 15_o 16_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n if_o we_o fix_v our_o meditation_n on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o divine_a essence_n and_o be_v or_o as_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n we_o shall_v be_v confound_v in_o these_o deep_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n but_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o he_o according_a to_o his_o proper_a office_n as_o he_o be_v a_o comforter_n or_o according_a to_o his_o several_a operation_n in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v then_o find_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o which_o will_v minister_v heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a consolation_n to_o our_o poor_a soul_n first_o therefore_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v a_o comforter_n to_o we_o in_o all_o our_o affliction_n and_o suffering_n for_o we_o be_v daily_o expose_v to_o many_o tribulation_n and_o calamity_n either_o for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o grace_n or_o for_o our_o correction_n when_o we_o lie_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n which_o will_v easy_o swallow_v we_o up_o if_o we_o have_v not_o some_o true_a comforter_n to_o support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o they_o 1_o they_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 1●_n 1_o there_o be_v also_o a_o host_n of_o sinful_a lust_n in_o we_o that_o war_n against_o our_o soul_n which_o do_v daily_o assault_v we_o with_o strong_a temptation_n and_o we_o be_v round_o beset_v with_o peril_n danger_n and_o spiritual_a enemy_n which_o continual_o threaten_v our_o downfall_n and_o ruin_n and_o do_v seek_v to_o hinder_v our_o salvation_n but_o above_o all_o we_o be_v sometime_o wound_v in_o our_o
true_a end_n for_o which_o we_o be_v create_v now_o we_o may_v take_v a_o view_n of_o our_o own_o condition_n and_o we_o may_v see_v in_o what_o state_n we_o stand_v with_o our_o god_n for_o if_o if_o we_o do_v principal_o attend_v to_o the_o true_a end_n of_o our_o creation_n that_o our_o study_n endeavour_n and_o all_o our_o action_n be_v chief_o bend_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o can_v true_o say_v with_o good_a hezekiah_n 3_o hezekiah_n 2_o kin._n 20._o 3_o i_o have_v walk_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o truth_n and_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o his_o sight_n or_o as_o holy_a david_n say_v 3_o say_v psal_n 26._o 3_o judge_v i_o o_o lord_n for_o i_o have_v walk_v in_o my_o integrity_n i_o have_v walk_v in_o thy_o truth_n also_o if_o we_o can_v true_o say_v 12_o say_v phil._n 2._o 12_o that_o our_o whole_a course_n of_o life_n have_v tend_v to_o the_o work_n out_o of_o our_o salvation_n with_o carefulness_n fear_n and_o tremble_a than_o we_o be_v most_o happy_a we_o steer_v our_o course_n to_o the_o right_a end_n and_o we_o shall_v at_o length_n attain_v to_o that_o kingdom_n of_o eternal_a glory_n which_o we_o desire_v and_o hope_n for_o but_o if_o upon_o a_o diligent_a search_n we_o find_v ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o a_o contrary_a course_n to_o sit_v with_o vain_a and_o profane_a person_n to_o have_v fellowship_n with_o hypocrite_n and_o dissembler_n to_o love_v the_o society_n of_o evil_a doer_n and_o to_o delight_v in_o earthly_a vanity_n all_o which_o will_v easy_o corrupt_v we_o by_o their_o evil_a example_n and_o sinful_a way_n then_o the_o course_n of_o our_o life_n be_v not_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v dishonourable_a to_o he_o and_o destructive_a to_o our_o own_o soul_n thus_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o perilous_a and_o dangerous_a way_n that_o lead_v direct_o into_o perdition_n if_o god_n in_o mercy_n do_v not_o bring_v we_o into_o the_o right_a way_n wherefore_o it_o do_v great_o concern_v we_o to_o raise_v up_o our_o thought_n to_o god_n our_o creator_n to_o fix_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n upon_o he_o 7_o he_o isa_n 51._o 7_o to_o look_v unto_o the_o rock_n whence_o we_o be_v hew_v and_o to_o the_o hole_n of_o the_o pit_n whence_o we_o be_v dig_v to_o look_v unto_o adam_n our_o first_o parent_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o innocency_n before_o his_o fall_n that_o we_o may_v labour_v for_o his_o purity_n that_o we_o may_v follow_v after_o his_o righteousness_n and_o seek_v the_o lord_n with_o pure_a affection_n and_o study_v how_o to_o serve_v and_o please_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n as_o adam_n be_v then_o able_a to_o do_v also_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o consider_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o conform_v ourselves_o to_o the_o common_a error_n of_o the_o world_n that_o man_n be_v bear_v to_o be_v for_o himself_o and_o for_o his_o ownn_n end_v which_o error_n we_o must_v careful_o avoid_v and_o then_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o s●eer_v our_o course_n the_o right_a way_n and_o we_o shall_v bestow_v our_o time_n to_o the_o right_a end_n 33_o end_n mat._n 6._o 33_o first_o to_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o and_o then_o those_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v needful_a for_o this_o present_a life_n shall_v be_v add_v unto_o we_o concern_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n man_n have_v power_n and_o ability_n give_v he_o to_o stand_v and_o continue_v in_o that_o perfect_a and_o bless_a condition_n wherein_o he_o be_v create_v but_o he_o do_v soon_o fall_v from_o god_n by_o transgress_v his_o command_n in_o eat_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n whereby_o he_o bring_v himself_o and_o all_o his_o posterity_n that_o be_v then_o in_o his_o loin_n and_o come_v out_o from_o he_o by_o natural_a propagation_n under_o the_o severe_a curse_n that_o god_n lay_v upon_o he_o for_o his_o sin_n and_o this_o be_v the_o original_a of_o sin_n to_o all_o his_o posterity_n by_o this_o mean_v adam_n deface_v the_o bright_a image_n of_o god_n that_o be_v stamp_v upon_o his_o soul_n for_o he_o lose_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o understanding_n the_o liberty_n of_o his_o will_n and_o the_o integrity_n of_o his_o heart_n also_o the_o earth_n be_v curse_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o the_o creature_n become_v rebellious_a to_o he_o he_o be_v now_o a_o slave_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o his_o own_o sinful_a lust_n and_o he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o redeem_v himself_o out_o of_o that_o captivity_n and_o bondage_n only_o he_o have_v a_o possibility_n by_o christ_n to_o be_v restore_v again_o to_o his_o former_a happiness_n whereas_o the_o angel_n that_o keep_v not_o their_o first_o station_n but_o sin_v against_o god_n and_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o heaven_n have_v no_o possibility_n to_o be_v again_o restore_v adam_n also_o have_v make_v himself_o and_o all_o his_o posterity_n liable_a to_o all_o outward_a cross_n and_o sorrow_n of_o body_n good_n and_o good_a name_n to_o all_o inward_a trouble_n of_o mind_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n to_o all_o temporal_a plague_n and_o punishment_n and_o to_o all_o eternal_a pain_n and_o torment_n this_o be_v our_o condition_n in_o he_o we_o do_v also_o fall_v from_o god_n with_o he_o and_o our_o loss_n hereby_o be_v as_o great_a as_o he_o be_v our_o misery_n as_o much_o as_o he_o he_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n and_o our_o tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n so_o that_o now_o we_o have_v great_a cause_n 3._o cause_n isa_n 38._o 1_o 2_o 3._o to_o turn_v our_o face_n towards_o the_o wall_n with_o good_a hezekiah_n and_o to_o weep_v with_o great_a weep_v to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o ourselves_o and_o to_o be_v confound_v in_o ourselves_o for_o the_o sentence_n of_o eternal_a death_n be_v pronounce_v against_o we_o and_o we_o be_v now_o under_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n and_o fury_n of_o a_o omnipotent_a judge_n because_o we_o have_v sin_v against_o god_n our_o maker_n 3._o maker_n psal_n 137_o 2_o 3._o we_o may_v now_o hang_v up_o our_o harp_n on_o the_o willow_n for_o we_o can_v sing_v no_o more_o the_o joyful_a song_n of_o zion_n we_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o paradise_n and_o out_o of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o we_o be_v now_o captive_n in_o a_o strange_a land_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n we_o have_v not_o now_o that_o sweet_a familiarity_n with_o god_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o loin_n of_o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n we_o can_v now_o enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n nor_o look_v upon_o he_o with_o comfort_n for_o all_o the_o beauty_n of_o our_o first_o holiness_n be_v stain_v and_o pollute_v with_o sin_n and_o uncleanness_n the_o pure_a image_n of_o god_n be_v deface_v in_o we_o we_o have_v no_o knowledge_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n no_o holy_a zeal_n in_o our_o heart_n no_o purity_n in_o our_o affection_n and_o no_o readiness_n of_o will_n to_o obey_v god_n we_o have_v lose_v all_o those_o precious_a ornament_n of_o grace_n of_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n understanding_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n which_o make_v we_o lovely_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o now_o we_o be_v whole_o naked_a 16_o naked_a ezek._n 16_o like_o a_o wretched_a infant_n that_o can_v help_v itself_o and_o we_o be_v void_a of_o all_o goodness_n and_o of_o all_o help_n and_o comfort_n in_o ourselves_o if_o we_o look_v further_o into_o our_o condition_n we_o shall_v see_v how_o we_o be_v plunge_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o all_o misery_n for_o we_o be_v now_o slave_n to_o every_o vanity_n and_o to_o every_o base_a sinful_a lust_n and_o our_o servitude_n and_o bondage_n under_o they_o be_v very_o miserable_a because_o they_o tyrannize_v over_o our_o soul_n and_o yet_o we_o do_v willing_o submit_v unto_o it_o which_o make_v we_o not_o able_a to_o break_v those_o chain_n of_o sin_n wherewith_o we_o be_v bind_v we_o have_v lose_v our_o right_n to_o the_o creature_n and_o our_o dominion_n and_o sovereignty_n over_o they_o the_o earth_n will_v yield_v we_o no_o increase_n without_o excessive_a labour_n and_o toil_n we_o lie_v open_v continual_o to_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o peril_n and_o danger_n to_o all_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n in_o this_o life_n and_o to_o eternal_a burn_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v whatsoever_o we_o want_v in_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a blessing_n and_o whatsoever_o we_o suffer_v by_o outward_a affliction_n or_o inward_a trouble_n of_o mind_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o sin_n and_o shall_v make_v we_o call_v to_o mind_n and_o with_o much_o grief_n and_o sadness_n of_o heart_n to_o think_v upon_o our_o fall_n in_o
will_v hear_v our_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n if_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o want_n of_o what_o we_o pray_v for_o three_o he_o will_v succour_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o distress_n if_o we_o cry_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o true_a apprehension_n of_o our_o own_o misery_n last_o such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v incline_v our_o will_n and_o put_v holy_a desire_n into_o our_o heart_n to_o seek_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n when_o we_o be_v prepare_v for_o it_o by_o true_a humiliation_n and_o sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n for_o than_o he_o will_v hear_v our_o prayer_n he_o will_v grant_v our_o request_n and_o will_v gracious_o accept_v we_o though_o our_o sin_n have_v former_o move_v he_o to_o hide_v himself_o from_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o the_o principal_a mean_n of_o grace_n be_v by_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n by_o who_o righteousness_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o who_o grace_n we_o be_v sanctify_v and_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o who_o blood_n we_o be_v save_v so_o that_o without_o christ_n we_o can_v neither_o come_v into_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n neither_o can_v any_o sanctify_a and_o save_v grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o to_o make_v we_o capable_a of_o salvation_n now_o god_n have_v appoint_v the_o sincere_a preach_v of_o his_o word_n to_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o reveal_v christ_n perfect_o and_o full_o to_o we_o and_o to_o work_v faith_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o be_v knit_v and_o unite_v unto_o christ_n from_o who_o all_o other_o sanctify_v and_o heavenly_a grace_n do_v plentiful_o flow_v and_o they_o be_v convey_v to_o we_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n ●7_n apostle_n rom._n 10._o ●7_n faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o bring_v in_o with_o it_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o it_o whatsoever_o be_v needful_a to_o salvation_n and_o there_o be_v no_o grace_n but_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o it_o by_o this_o mean_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v accompany_v the_o administration_n of_o it_o to_o bring_v it_o close_o to_o our_o heart_n god_n have_v also_o other_o mean_n which_o he_o use_v for_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o and_o to_o bring_v we_o home_n when_o we_o go_v astray_o from_o he_o for_o every_o blessing_n that_o we_o receive_v every_o affliction_n that_o he_o send_v and_o every_o motion_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o feel_v be_v a_o call_n from_o god_n and_o a_o mean_n that_o conduce_v to_o the_o gain_n of_o some_o grace_n or_o other_o his_o blessing_n shall_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o glorify_v god_n with_o our_o praise_n and_o thankfulness_n 4._o thankfulness_n rom._n 2._o 4._o his_o goodness_n shall_v lead_v we_o to_o repentance_n and_o his_o love_n to_o we_o shall_v bind_v we_o to_o love_v he_o again_o also_o the_o sorrow_n and_o misery_n that_o we_o suffer_v in_o this_o life_n shall_v teach_v we_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o patience_n under_o the_o cross_n they_o shall_v humble_v we_o and_o bring_v we_o to_o true_a repentance_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n so_o likewise_o every_o motion_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n shall_v move_v we_o to_o obedience_n and_o to_o conformity_n of_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o daily_a experience_n we_o have_v of_o god_n care_n over_o we_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o confide_v in_o god_n and_o to_o rest_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n whatsoever_o these_o and_o the_o like_a mean_n god_n do_v use_v to_o quicken_v up_o those_o grace_n that_o lie_v languish_v in_o we_o and_o be_v as_o dead_a to_o our_o apprehension_n and_o also_o to_o make_v we_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o support_v we_o in_o all_o our_o trial_n and_o distress_n these_o heavenly_a motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n still_a voice_n which_o shall_v make_v deep_a impression_n in_o our_o heart_n because_o he_o do_v thereby_o immediate_o from_o himself_o reveal_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o which_o holy_a inspiration_n we_o ought_v to_o yield_v our_o willing_a obedience_n though_o it_o be_v irksome_a to_o our_o nature_n and_o cross_v the_o unregenerate_a part_n of_o our_o will_n as_o to_o repent_v and_o to_o leave_v a_o darling_n sin_n which_o we_o have_v long_o nourish_v in_o our_o bosom_n this_o be_v a_o time_n when_o we_o may_v gain_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o listen_v to_o this_o voice_n and_o cheerful_o to_o obey_v it_o wherefore_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v our_o care_n to_o embrace_v any_o mean_n or_o opportunity_n that_o god_n shall_v tender_v to_o we_o for_o grace_n because_o it_o be_v god_n time_n of_o grace_n and_o he_o will_v second_v his_o own_o time_n and_o his_o own_o mean_n with_o a_o blessing_n if_o we_o embrace_v it_o but_o if_o we_o will_v be_v feast_v when_o we_o shall_v fast_o and_o pray_v or_o rejoice_v when_o we_o shall_v mourn_v and_o weep_v we_o do_v then_o discover_v too_o much_o disobedience_n and_o rebellion_n against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n now_o we_o ought_v to_o examine_v ourselves_o how_o we_o have_v profit_v under_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n how_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v wrought_v upon_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n what_o heavenly_a grace_n have_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o it_o or_o by_o any_o of_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n and_o what_o spiritual_a comfort_n we_o have_v find_v by_o they_o also_o we_o ought_v to_o examine_v what_o thankfulness_n we_o have_v return_v to_o god_n for_o his_o blessing_n what_o sorrow_n of_o heart_n we_o have_v have_v for_o our_o sin_n how_o we_o have_v be_v humble_v under_o the_o cross_n what_o reformation_n of_o life_n grace_n have_v wrought_v in_o we_o how_o we_o have_v obey_v the_o holy_a motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o how_o we_o have_v be_v ravish_v in_o soul_n with_o earnest_a desire_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n if_o we_o have_v live_v long_o under_o a_o powerful_a ministry_n and_o yet_o have_v gain_v little_a or_o no_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o no_o faith_n or_o save_a grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o it_o we_o have_v then_o lose_v so_o much_o time_n of_o grace_n and_o we_o have_v not_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o best_a advantage_n nor_o to_o the_o right_a end_n as_o god_n have_v appoint_v which_o be_v to_o gain_v grace_n for_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o let_v these_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n how_o to_o improve_v the_o time_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o right_a end_n that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v good_a steward_n and_o profitable_a servant_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ_n by_o that_o gain_n which_o we_o shall_v make_v of_o grace_n in_o this_o little_a stock_n of_o time_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o more_o time_n and_o the_o more_o mean_n of_o grace_n we_o do_v enjoy_v the_o more_o fruit_n of_o grace_n we_o must_v bring_v forth_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v be_v unprofitable_a servant_n if_o we_o improve_v our_o time_n for_o grace_n as_o we_o ought_v we_o shall_v gain_v the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n our_o heart_n will_v be_v season_v with_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o our_o conversation_n will_v be_v in_o heaven_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n for_o we_o shall_v live_v a_o gracious_a and_o a_o comfortable_a life_n now_o and_o a_o glorious_a and_o bless_a life_n hereafter_o also_o let_v this_o be_v the_o true_a desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o redeem_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o have_v lose_v and_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o more_o profit_n that_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o may_v appear_v in_o our_o obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n in_o our_o zeal_n to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n and_o in_o our_o care_n to_o walk_v in_o all_o piety_n and_o virtue_n which_o we_o may_v the_o better_a do_v if_o we_o daily_o address_v ourselves_o to_o god_n by_o faithful_a prayer_n for_o the_o gracious_a assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n herein_o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o though_o god_n do_v give_v we_o time_n and_o mean_n for_o grace_n yet_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o it_o without_o the_o special_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o for_o he_o must_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n he_o must_v open_v our_o heart_n and_o
of_o sin_n and_o satan_n 53._o satan_n isa_n 53._o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o sorrow_n he_o be_v despise_v he_o have_v bear_v our_o grief_n he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o with_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v all_o we_o like_v sheep_n be_v go_v astray_o we_o have_v turn_v every_o one_o to_o his_o own_o way_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v lay_v on_o he_o the_o iniquity_n of_o we_o all_o hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n can_v dispense_v with_o any_o sin_n for_o he_o do_v severe_o punish_v it_o in_o his_o own_o dear_a son_n because_o he_o find_v the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n upon_o he_o though_o it_o be_v none_o of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o be_v in_o his_o own_o nature_n free_a from_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n whatsoever_o now_o learn_v this_o instruction_n that_o when_o thy_o heart_n do_v meditate_v on_o christ_n thy_o gracious_a and_o bless_a redeemer_n thy_o thought_n must_v not_o rest_v upon_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o with_o the_o pierce_a eye_n and_o power_n of_o faith_n thou_o must_v raise_v they_o up_o to_o contemplate_v with_o all_o due_a reverence_n his_o deity_n &_o admire_v with_o great_a admiration_n that_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n be_v please_v for_o thy_o sake_n thou_o poor_a silly_a worm_n to_o leave_v his_o glorious_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o lay_v down_o that_o heavenly_a glory_n which_o be_v ever_o his_o due_n and_o to_o condescend_v so_o low_a as_o to_o be_v clothe_v with_o thy_o nature_n which_o thou_o have_v stain_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v clothe_v thou_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o restore_v thou_o again_o to_o the_o first_o purity_n and_o integrity_n in_o god_n account_n wherein_o thou_o be_v create_v now_o then_o can_v thou_o ever_o put_v a_o end_n to_o thy_o meditation_n on_o his_o abundant_a love_n to_o thou_o can_v thou_o be_v unthankful_a to_o he_o that_o he_o have_v be_v so_o rich_a in_o goodness_n to_o thou_o so_o free_a in_o his_o mercy_n and_o so_o liberal_a in_o his_o benefit_n to_o such_o a_o worthless_a creature_n as_o thou_o be_v let_v he_o therefore_o be_v the_o chief_a joy_n of_o thy_o heart_n and_o put_v thy_o whole_a confidence_n in_o he_o by_o faith_n for_o thy_o salvation_n do_v not_o forget_v so_o great_a love_n but_o close_o with_o he_o embrace_v he_o with_o the_o arm_n of_o thy_o faith_n be_v guide_v and_o direct_v by_o he_o in_o all_o thy_o way_n and_o yield_v all_o submission_n to_o christ_n thy_o king_n and_o governor_n to_o obey_v his_o law_n and_o to_o observe_v his_o command_n feed_v thy_o heart_n then_o and_o refresh_v thy_o soul_n by_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o excellency_n and_o alsufficiency_n of_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n with_o thought_n beseem_v the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o his_o sacred_a person_n for_o if_o thou_o think_v upon_o he_o only_o as_o he_o be_v man_n thou_o do_v too_o much_o undervalue_v his_o highness_n and_o if_o thou_o conceive_v of_o he_o as_o only_a god_n thou_o can_v not_o draw_v then_o near_o unto_o he_o without_o dread_n and_o terror_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o also_o by_o reason_n of_o thy_o pollution_n and_o defilement_n if_o christ_n be_v only_a man_n he_o can_v not_o have_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o a_o infinite_a god_n neither_o have_v his_o blood_n be_v a_o sufficient_a price_n for_o man_n redemption_n and_o if_o only_a god_n he_o can_v not_o have_v suffer_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n by_o his_o death_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v meditate_v on_o he_o and_o apply_v thyself_o to_o he_o by_o a_o true_a and_o a_o lively_a faith_n as_o he_o be_v thy_o only_a saviour_n both_o god_n and_o man_n 16._o man_n heb._n 4._o 16._o than_o thou_o may_v come_v bold_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n where_o thou_o shall_v receive_v and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n and_o thy_o meditation_n of_o he_o will_v be_v exceed_o comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n thou_o may_v safe_o fix_v thy_o faith_n upon_o he_o and_o ground_n thy_o hope_n in_o he_o for_o thy_o salvation_n 12_o salvation_n act._n 4._o 12_o for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n whereby_o thou_o must_v be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o according_a to_o the_o esteem_n thou_o have_v in_o thy_o heart_n of_o that_o name_n such_o be_v thy_o faith_n and_o such_o be_v thy_o hope_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o for_o if_o thy_o thought_n concern_v he_o be_v low_a it_o be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o thy_o faith_n in_o he_o be_v weak_a but_o if_o they_o be_v true_o raise_v up_o to_o contemplate_v and_o acknowledge_v his_o deity_n through_o his_o humanity_n it_o be_v a_o good_a evidence_n that_o thy_o faith_n be_v strong_a in_o he_o wherefore_o renounce_v all_o that_o be_v in_o nature_n or_o in_o humane_a learning_n and_o trust_v not_o to_o thy_o own_o ability_n or_o to_o common_a grace_n for_o thy_o redemption_n for_o they_o profit_v thou_o nothing_o for_o thy_o justification_n though_o they_o may_v conduce_v much_o towards_o a_o well_o order_v and_o civil_a life_n but_o strive_v to_o get_v faith_n and_o all_o sanctify_a grace_n that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v impute_v to_o thou_o and_o that_o thy_o life_n may_v be_v true_o sanctify_v and_o reform_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n we_o must_v consider_v further_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n of_o christ_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n that_o he_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o some_o resemblance_n which_o be_v very_o comfortable_a for_o we_o to_o meditate_v upon_o because_o they_o show_v our_o union_n with_o he_o his_o special_a care_n of_o we_o and_o the_o great_a benefit_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v by_o he_o if_o we_o can_v make_v a_o holy_a application_n of_o he_o to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n first_o he_o be_v resemble_v to_o a_o vine_n and_o then_o we_o be_v the_o branch_n 5._o branch_n joh._n 15._o 5._o i_o be_o the_o vine_n say_v christ_n you_o be_v the_o branch_n he_o that_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o the_o same_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n for_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o if_o we_o be_v ingraft_v by_o faith_n into_o this_o true_a vine_n we_o be_v then_o so_o firm_o knit_v and_o unite_v unto_o christ_n that_o no_o power_n nor_o policy_n can_v separate_v we_o from_o he_o for_o 5._o for_o 1_o pet._n 1._o 5._o we_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n we_o shall_v be_v purge_v and_o prune_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o pollution_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v dress_v and_o adorn_v with_o grace_n and_o virtue_n that_o we_o may_v bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n in_o a_o pious_a life_n and_o holy_a conversation_n second_o christ_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o head_n 18._o head_n col._n 1._o 18._o for_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o that_o body_n to_o be_v guide_v and_o direct_v by_o he_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o instruct_v of_o he_o and_o as_o the_o head_n preserve_v the_o natural_a body_n 23_o body_n eph._n 5._o 23_o so_o be_v christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n and_o as_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n draw_v their_o sense_n and_o motion_n from_o the_o head_n and_o be_v serviceable_a and_o obedient_a to_o the_o command_n of_o the_o head_n as_o the_o hand_n to_o work_v the_o foot_n to_o run_v the_o back_n to_o bear_v any_o heavy_a burden_n and_o the_o like_a so_o do_v we_o draw_v all_o our_o sense_n and_o motion_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n from_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o ought_v to_o yield_v all_o duty_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o to_o do_v what_o he_o command_v with_o all_o cheerfulness_n of_o spirit_n and_o willing_o to_o bear_v his_o cross_n though_o the_o burden_n be_v very_o heavy_a to_o our_o weak_a nature_n this_o will_v give_v we_o great_a assurance_n that_o we_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n unto_o christ_n if_o we_o find_v this_o readiness_n of_o will_n in_o ourselves_o to_o submit_v to_o his_o most_o bless_a and_o holy_a will_n three_o christ_n be_v call_v 20_o call_v heb._n 13._o 20_o that_o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o 14._o himself_o joh._n 10._o 11_o 14._o i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n and_o i_o know_v my_o sheep_n and_o be_o know_v of_o i_o the_o good_a shepherd_n give_v his_o life_n for_o the_o sheep_n the_o prophet_n tell_v we_o
christ_n be_v above_o all_o humane_a wisdom_n and_o therefore_o 2._o therefore_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 1_o 2._o paul_n come_v not_o to_o the_o corinthian_n with_o excellency_n of_o speech_n or_o of_o wisdom_n to_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n for_o he_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o they_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v gain_v this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n by_o our_o study_n and_o meditation_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v enough_o to_o make_v our_o soul_n gracious_a here_o and_o eternal_o bless_v hereafter_o of_o christ_n prophetical_a office_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o several_a office_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v draw_v some_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o our_o comfort_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n according_a as_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n 18._o moses_n deut._n 18._o 18._o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o this_o be_v that_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n who_o have_v not_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n by_o divine_a revelation_n as_o all_o the_o prophet_n have_v but_o it_o be_v inherent_a in_o he_o and_o he_o have_v it_o from_o his_o own_o divine_a nature_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o christ_n give_v some_o manifestation_n of_o this_o his_o office_n by_o way_n of_o pprophecy_n 21._o pprophecy_n luc._n 21._o for_o he_o foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n 44._o temple_n luke_n 19_o 43_o 44._o the_o great_a desolation_n that_o shall_v short_o come_v upon_o jerusalem_n 25_o jerusalem_n lu._n 21._o 25_o and_o also_o the_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n likewise_o he_o foretell_v 19_o foretell_v mat._n 20._o 18_o 19_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o himself_o in_o his_o passion_n 34_o passion_n mat._n 26._o 34_o and_o how_o shameful_o peter_n shall_v deny_v he_o and_o not_o a_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n can_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o must_v be_v fulfil_v in_o due_a time_n because_o 5_o because_o joh._n 14._o 5_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n do_v speak_v it_o he_o 25._o he_o joh._n 2._o 24_o 25._o do_v know_v the_o secret_n of_o every_o man_n heart_n he_o know_v who_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o who_o do_v not_o and_o also_o what_o mischief_n his_o enemy_n intend_v against_o he_o for_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o glimpse_n of_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n to_o his_o minister_n to_o foresee_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o will_v fall_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o people_n if_o they_o be_v above_o measure_n sinful_a and_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v nor_o bring_v to_o repentance_n but_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o preach_n have_v now_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n ordinary_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o every_o word_n which_o christ_n have_v speak_v must_v be_v fulfil_v how_o ought_v we_o to_o fear_n and_o tremble_v at_o his_o threaten_n how_o careful_a shall_v we_o be_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o he_o by_o sound_a repentance_n and_o turn_n unto_o god_n before_o he_o put_v in_o execution_n what_o he_o have_v threaten_v also_o how_o comfortable_a be_v his_o promise_n which_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v be_v perform_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n how_o can_v any_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n tire_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o a_o promise_n of_o succour_n from_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v we_o despair_v of_o our_o salvation_n if_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o christ_n have_v perfect_o wrought_v our_o redemption_n and_o have_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n his_o father_n also_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n do_v see_v by_o his_o divine_a nature_n into_o the_o secret_n of_o all_o heart_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v vigilant_a and_o careful_a to_o keep_v our_o heart_n cleanse_v and_o purify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o daily_a renew_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o no_o darling_n sin_n may_v be_v cherish_v there_o for_o he_o can_v see_v it_o and_o find_v it_o out_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a end_n that_o christ_n do_v intend_v in_o this_o his_o office_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o baptism_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n according_a to_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o he_o 18._o he_o isa_n 61._o luc._n 4._o 18._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n unto_o the_o meek_a he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o break_a heart_a to_o proclaim_v liberty_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v to_o proclaim_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n christ_n do_v execute_v the_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o 29._o and_o mat._n 7._o 28_o 29._o the_o people_n be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n for_o 32_o for_o luc._n 4._o 32_o his_o word_n be_v with_o power_n and_o he_o teach_v they_o as_o one_o have_v authority_n his_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v pure_a and_o divine_a it_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n will_n and_o to_o the_o regulate_v of_o our_o sinful_a life_n according_a to_o god_n commandment_n which_o he_o comprehend_v in_o this_o short_a sum_n 39_o sum_n mat._n 22_o 37._o 39_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o l●rd_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o christ_n do_v right_o interpret_v the_o moral_a law_n and_o free_v it_o from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o the_o pharisee_n for_o whereas_o that_o command_v only_o external_a obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o not_o to_o kill_v not_o to_o commit_v actual_a adultery_n and_o the_o like_a 5._o like_a mat._n 5._o his_o doctrine_n add_v internal_a observation_n as_o not_o to_o speak_v angry_a word_n to_o our_o neighbour_n hurt_n not_o to_o lust_n and_o the_o like_a and_o whereas_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n command_v to_o offer_v up_o a_o sheep_n or_o a_o ox_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n do_v instruct_v we_o to_o offer_v up_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o to_o purpose_n and_o resolve_v the_o reformation_n of_o our_o sinful_a life_n christ_n doctrine_n tend_v whole_o to_o the_o perfect_a service_n of_o god_n to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o depression_n of_o our_o spiritual_a pride_n to_o the_o mortification_n of_o our_o sinful_a appetite_n and_o to_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o our_o heavenly_a cogitation_n to_o peace_n of_o conscience_n tranquillity_n of_o mind_n purity_n of_o body_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o brief_a his_o doctrine_n do_v contain_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o he_o do_v reveal_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a so_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o conversation_n be_v exact_o suitable_a thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v most_o upright_o and_o holy_a and_o a_o lively_a table_n wherein_o be_v express_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o doctrine_n this_o may_v teach_v all_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n to_o frame_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o their_o good_a example_n may_v confirm_v their_o doctrine_n and_o be_v a_o pattern_n for_o other_o to_o follow_v christ_n do_v still_o execute_v this_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o minister_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n and_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v also_o join_v with_o their_o continual_a preach_n to_o make_v it_o powerful_a for_o edification_n and_o instruction_n and_o effectual_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n must_v be_v sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n and_o our_o ear_n must_v be_v spiritual_o bore_v when_o we_o come_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o we_o must_v faithful_o pray_v that_o his_o spirit_n will_v accompany_v the_o
outward_a ministration_n of_o it_o to_o make_v it_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n examine_v now_o thyself_o what_o impression_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v make_v in_o thy_o heart_n which_o thou_o have_v often_o hear_v sincere_o preach_v and_o how_o thou_o have_v be_v profit_v by_o it_o what_o knowledge_n thou_o have_v gain_v in_o heavenly_a thing_n how_o thou_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n how_o thy_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v establish_v what_o hope_v thou_o have_v of_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o how_o firm_o thy_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n also_o how_o thou_o be_v humble_v for_o thy_o sin_n and_o what_o reformation_n of_o life_n it_o have_v wrought_v in_o thou_o what_o patience_n and_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n thou_o have_v in_o thy_o suffering_n what_o zeal_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n what_o constancy_n in_o thy_o trial_n and_o what_o love_n thou_o bear_v to_o thy_o neighbour_n these_o and_o the_o like_a benefit_n thou_o may_v have_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o profitable_a hearer_n of_o it_o if_o upon_o due_a examination_n of_o thyself_o thou_o do_v find_v any_o of_o these_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o thou_o it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o he_o have_v make_v thou_o a_o profitable_a hearer_n of_o his_o word_n many_o do_v hear_v christ_n doctrine_n from_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o yet_o they_o receive_v no_o good_a by_o it_o so_o thou_o may_v hear_v his_o holy_a word_n and_o be_v no_o whit_n the_o better_a for_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o preach_v as_o well_o to_o thy_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o it_o be_v to_o thy_o ear_n by_o his_o minister_n oh_o consider_v how_o many_o worthy_a sermon_n thou_o have_v hear_v without_o profit_n what_o thou_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o yet_o not_o edify_v nor_o reform_v because_o thou_o do_v hear_v they_o with_o uncircumcised_a ear_n and_o with_o a_o pollute_a and_o unbelieving_a heart_n for_o thy_o heart_n be_v natural_o unfit_a to_o receive_v the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n until_o rhe_n holy_a ghost_n do_v prepare_v it_o and_o season_v it_o with_o grace_n that_o it_o may_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o newness_n of_o life_n 12_o life_n hos_fw-la 10._o 12_o there_o be_v so_o much_o fallow_a ground_n in_o we_o which_o be_v barren_a and_o unfruitful_a that_o the_o good_a seed_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v be_v sow_o to_o we_o in_o righteousness_n to_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o it_o in_o mercy_n until_o the_o holy_a ghost_n break_v up_o this_o fallow_a ground_n with_o the_o power_n of_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n neither_o can_v we_o seek_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o may_v come_v and_o rain_v righteousness_n upon_o we_o wherefore_o 4._o wherefore_o jer._n 4._o 4._o we_o must_v be_v circumcise_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o foreskin_n of_o our_o heart_n must_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o vail_n that_o be_v upon_o our_o understanding_n must_v be_v remove_v and_o we_o must_v be_v purify_v by_o faith_n before_o we_o can_v be_v make_v fruitful_a in_o a_o holy_a and_o virtuous_a conversation_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n wherefore_o embrace_v the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n with_o pure_a affection_n lay_v it_o up_o in_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o in_o thy_o serious_a meditation_n that_o it_o may_v abide_v with_o thou_o to_o make_v thou_o grow_v daily_o in_o grace_n virtue_n and_o godliness_n until_o thou_o come_v to_o a_o full_a stature_n in_o christ_n consider_v therefore_o and_o observe_v how_o thou_o be_v inward_o affect_v when_o thou_o hear_v it_o what_o delight_n thou_o have_v in_o it_o and_o what_o impression_n of_o grace_n it_o make_v in_o thy_o heart_n for_o if_o thou_o delight_v in_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n and_o rejoic_a when_o his_o word_n sound_v in_o thy_o ear_n 41_o ear_n luc._n 5._o 41_o as_o the_o babe_n do_v leap_v for_o joy_n in_o elizabeth_n womb_n when_o she_o hear_v the_o salutation_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n because_o christ_n be_v then_o in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n thou_o be_v then_o in_o a_o bless_a and_o comfortable_a condition_n 14._o condition_n isa_n 58._o 13_o 14._o and_o thy_o soul_n shall_v delight_v in_o the_o lord_n who_o shall_v feed_v thou_o with_o the_o heritage_n of_o jacob._n christ_n do_v also_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v by_o his_o work_n that_o we_o daily_o see_v both_o of_o justice_n and_o of_o mercy_n which_o be_v his_o silent_a preacher_n and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v careful_o regard_v for_o there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o his_o but_o be_v intend_v for_o our_o instruction_n noah_n be_v many_o year_n in_o build_v the_o ark_n which_o be_v a_o long_a sermon_n to_o teach_v the_o world_n of_o the_o ungodly_a what_o god_n intend_v to_o do_v god_n 20_o god_n 1_o pet._n 3._o 20_o wait_v then_o for_o their_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n while_o the_o ark_n be_v a_o prepare_v 5_o prepare_v 2_o pet._n 2._o 5_o noah_n also_o be_v a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n to_o they_o all_o that_o time_n and_o do_v warn_v they_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o do_v hang_v over_o their_o head_n for_o their_o sin_n thus_o do_v god_n also_o deal_v with_o we_o for_o he_o do_v visit_v we_o with_o sickness_n he_o do_v teach_v we_o thereby_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o for_o the_o hour_n of_o dissolution_n and_o to_o perfect_v our_o account_n which_o we_o must_v make_v to_o the_o great_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o the_o last_o day_n that_o so_o we_o may_v willing_o resign_v up_o ourselves_o unto_o god_n when_o death_n shall_v part_v they_o from_o our_o body_n when_o god_n suffer_v we_o to_o fall_v into_o temptation_n than_o he_o call_v we_o to_o pray_v for_o his_o assist_a grace_n for_o strength_n of_o faith_n and_o for_o constancy_n to_o stand_v out_o against_o the_o devil_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v give_v we_o the_o crown_n of_o victory_n if_o he_o do_v visit_v we_o with_o loss_n trouble_n or_o affliction_n it_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o patience_n and_o meekness_n and_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n until_o he_o do_v deliver_v we_o if_o he_o do_v chastise_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o repentance_n when_o god_n bestow_v his_o blessing_n upon_o we_o or_o remove_v the_o cross_n from_o we_o 15_o we_o ps_n 50._o 15_o than_o he_o call_v for_o a_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n to_o we_o howsoever_o god_n deal_v with_o we_o either_o in_o judgement_n or_o in_o mercy_n it_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o glorify_v he_o as_o well_o in_o our_o suffering_n as_o for_o his_o blessing_n thus_o god_n do_v teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o what_o we_o shall_v do_v and_o how_o to_o obey_v his_o will_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o work_n and_o as_o our_o ear_n must_v be_v open_a to_o his_o word_n that_o it_o may_v be_v convey_v to_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o we_o shall_v daily_o observe_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o how_o he_o deal_v with_o we_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v receive_v instruction_n and_o our_o tongue_n may_v bless_v his_o great_a and_o glorious_a name_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o listen_v to_o god_n voice_n in_o they_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v return_v a_o answer_n of_o obedience_n agreeable_a to_o his_o will_n of_o christ_n priestly_a office_n god_n do_v also_o ordain_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o priest_n accord-to_a this_o of_o david_n 4._o david_n ps_n 110._o 4._o the_o lord_n swear_v ●nd_n will_v not_o repent_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v he_o be_v anoint_v to_o his_o office_n not_o with_o the_o material_a oil_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o with_o the_o spiritual_a unction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o he_o do_v execute_v it_o partly_o by_o his_o prayer_n which_o he_o do_v frequent_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n his_o father_n for_o all_o his_o elect_a in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o partly_o by_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o offer_v up_o upon_o the_o cross_n at_o his_o death_n 25._o death_n heb_fw-mi 7._o 24_o 25._o christ_n priesthood_n be_v unchangeable_a and_o eternal_a for_o he_o be_v still_o our_o highpriest_n and_o ever_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o save_v we_o to_o the_o uttermost_a that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o 8._o he_o heb._n 8._o we_o have_v such_o a_o highpriest_n who_o be_v set_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o heaven_n 27._o heaven_n heb._n 7._o 26_o 27._o for_o
from_o we_o if_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o god_n good_a pleasure_n to_o who_o holy_a will_v we_o must_v always_o submit_v our_o desire_n for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n to_o deliver_v we_o it_o will_v be_v his_o will_n to_o comfort_v we_o if_o we_o do_v patient_o attend_v his_o appoint_a time_n this_o be_v holy_a david_n counsel_n 14_o counsel_n ps_n 27._o 14_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o he_o shall_v strengthen_v thy_o heart_n wait_v i_o say_v on_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 8._o say_v ps_n 34_o 8._o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o thus_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v also_o wait_v to_o do_v we_o good_a for_o thus_o the_o prophet_n express_v the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n 18_o people_n be_v 30._o 18_o and_o therefore_o will_v the_o lord_n wait_v that_o he_o may_v be_v gracious_a unto_o you_o what_o can_v more_o strong_o move_v we_o to_o wait_v patient_o the_o lord_n time_n when_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o send_v we_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o 15_o they_o psa_fw-la 50._o 15_o god_n have_v also_o command_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o our_o trouble_n and_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o deliver_v we_o and_o as_o he_o have_v command_v the_o one_o so_o he_o will_v never_o fail_v to_o perform_v the_o other_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n give_v this_o cup_n to_o the_o wicked_a 28._o wicked_a jer._n 25._o 25._o 28._o it_o be_v the_o wine_n cup_n of_o his_o fury_n to_o they_o for_o their_o destruction_n and_o though_o they_o refuse_v to_o take_v it_o yet_o they_o shall_v certain_o drink_v it_o sometime_o the_o lord_n make_v his_o own_o people_n drink_v very_o deep_a of_o this_o cup_n for_o thus_o the_o prophet_n bewail_v the_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n of_o jerusalem_n 17._o jerusalem_n isa_n 51._o 17._o awake_v awake_a stand_v up_o o_o jerusalem_n which_o have_v drink_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o cup_n of_o his_o fury_n thou_o have_v drunken_a the_o dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o tremble_a and_o wring_v they_o out_o but_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n will_v take_v a_o time_n to_o plead_v their_o cause_n when_o they_o repent_v and_o forsake_v their_o sin_n and_o turn_v unto_o he_o 23._o he_o be_v 51._o 22_o 23._o behold_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v take_v out_o of_o thy_o hand_n the_o cup_n of_o tremble_a even_o the_o dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o my_o sury_n thou_o shall_v no_o more_o drink_v it_o again_o but_o i_o will_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o they_o that_o afflict_v thou_o if_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o his_o servant_n it_o will_v be_v but_o for_o a_o night_n joy_n will_v come_v in_o the_o morning_n if_o he_o do_v suffer_v the_o wicked_a to_o afflict_v they_o it_o will_v be_v for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o then_o he_o will_v give_v they_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o consolation_n for_o their_o sorrow_n and_o at_o length_n will_v pour_v out_o his_o fury_n in_o full_a measure_n upon_o their_o enemy_n though_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o christ_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n shall_v drink_v this_o cup_n and_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o it_o which_o bring_v he_o so_o low_o in_o his_o own_o apprehension_n as_o if_o god_n have_v forsake_v he_o yet_o his_o divine_a nature_n do_v so_o uphold_v he_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o whereby_o he_o have_v make_v that_o cup_n mild_a and_o gentle_a to_o we_o for_o all_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o must_v taste_v of_o this_o cup_n in_o this_o life_n and_o as_o peter_n say_v if_o judgement_n first_o begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a scarce_o be_v save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v if_o god_n give_v this_o cup_n of_o tremble_v to_o his_o own_o dear_a son_n who_o be_v full_a of_o all_o good_a sure_o than_o he_o will_v not_o spare_v we_o that_o natural_o be_v dry_a barren_a and_o fruitless_a wherefore_o look_v narrow_o to_o thy_o way_n and_o walk_v circumspect_o before_o thy_o god_n for_o if_o thy_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n break_v upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o continue_v in_o they_o without_o repentance_n god_n will_v put_v his_o cup_n of_o fury_n in_o thy_o hand_n and_o thou_o must_v certain_o drink_v it_o which_o will_v make_v thy_o heart_n to_o quake_v and_o tremble_v when_o thou_o do_v taste_v it_o 6._o it_o ●an_v 5._o 5_o 6._o king_n belshazzar_n countenance_n be_v change_v and_o his_o thought_n trouble_v he_o so_o that_o the_o joint_n of_o his_o loin_n be_v loose_v and_o his_o knee_n smite_v one_o against_o another_o when_o he_o do_v but_o see_v the_o hand-writing_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o wall_n against_o he_o how_o much_o then_o will_v thou_o tremble_v that_o must_v drink_v the_o dregs_o of_o this_o cup_n if_o thou_o go_v on_o still_o in_o a_o rebellious_a way_n against_o god_n without_o repentance_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v seek_v the_o lord_n betimes_o and_o meet_v he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o with_o a_o penitent_a heart_n he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o thou_o and_o this_o cup_n shall_v either_o pass_v from_o thou_o or_o else_o it_o shall_v be_v temper_v to_o thy_o strength_n that_o thou_o may_v drink_v it_o with_o comfort_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o our_o saviour_n bloody_a sweat_n we_o shall_v see_v the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o with_o what_o violence_n the_o devil_n do_v assault_v he_o thus_o terrible_a be_v his_o agony_n because_o the_o great_a dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n do_v set_v upon_o he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o cast_v his_o venomous_a and_o poison_a dart_n to_o wound_v his_o very_a soul_n if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a and_o to_o sting_v he_o unto_o death_n though_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n be_v suffer_v at_o last_o to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n yet_o the_o venom_n of_o their_o malice_n can_v not_o hurt_v he_o for_o as_o he_o live_v a_o innocent_a lamb_n without_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n so_o he_o die_v a_o sacrifice_n without_o blemish_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o by_o his_o death_n he_o do_v vanquish_v sin_n which_o be_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n and_o by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o do_v vanquish_v the_o devil_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o also_o he_o subdue_v all_o the_o power_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o perfect_o finish_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o man_n redemption_n in_o this_o agony_n christ_n find_v the_o burden_n of_o sin_n so_o heavy_a upon_o he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o strong_a against_o he_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v heavy_a even_o to_o the_o death_n what_o can_v be_v want_v to_o add_v sorrow_n to_o his_o soul_n when_o the_o great_a dragon_n of_o hell_n be_v unchained_a and_o let_v loose_a upon_o he_o yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n he_o overcome_v he_o though_o he_o be_v force_v to_o a_o bloody_a sweat_n if_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n be_v thus_o bitter_a and_o painful_a to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o full_a strength_n of_o body_n how_o terrible_a be_v it_o afterward_o when_o his_o body_n be_v faint_a and_o weak_a and_o his_o spirit_n almost_o spend_v if_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o own_o power_n do_v thus_o afflict_v his_o soul_n how_o be_v he_o afflict_v when_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v torture_v and_o torment_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o cruel_a instrument_n in_o his_o great_a weakness_n wherefore_o if_o he_o do_v sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n for_o our_o sake_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o we_o to_o take_v no_o pain_n in_o his_o service_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o name_n and_o to_o suffer_v nothing_o for_o his_o glory_n we_o can_v sweat_v abundant_o about_o our_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n and_o about_o our_o affair_n in_o this_o world_n but_o we_o can_v feel_v no_o warmth_n of_o holy_a zeal_n in_o our_o affection_n towards_o he_o neither_o will_v we_o take_v any_o pain_n about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o will_v not_o suffer_v our_o own_o name_n or_o credit_n to_o be_v blemish_v but_o we_o hear_v the_o sacred_a name_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n dishonour_v and_o blaspheme_v we_o be_v not_o move_v at_o it_o but_o we_o can_v suffer_v it_o well_o enough_o also_o we_o can_v profess_v his_o name_n when_o there_o be_v no_o opposition_n against_o it_o but_o if_o cloud_n or_o storm_n of_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n do_v arise_v upon_o we_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o be_v ready_a quick_o to_o shrink_v from_o
it_o or_o if_o his_o enemy_n strike_v at_o he_o through_o our_o side_n we_o be_v then_o much_o trouble_v and_o we_o can_v bear_v no_o smart_n for_o he_o though_o he_o do_v sweat_v clot_n of_o blood_n for_o we_o if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n if_o this_o be_v our_o love_n to_o our_o redeemer_n and_o our_o faithfulness_n to_o our_o saviour_n and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o cowardice_n in_o we_o that_o we_o can_v stand_v for_o he_o we_o do_v then_o discover_v too_o much_o ingratitude_n and_o unthankfulness_n to_o our_o most_o love_a and_o dear_a saviour_n and_o too_o much_o forgetfulness_n of_o his_o great_a goodness_n to_o we_o if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v how_o bitter_a christ_n agony_n be_v to_o his_o very_a soul_n it_o will_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o magnify_v he_o for_o his_o grace_n and_o goodness_n and_o to_o express_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o his_o praise_n and_o glory_n by_o our_o piety_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n and_o by_o our_o work_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n to_o his_o saint_n in_o their_o necessity_n for_o if_o we_o comfort_v the_o comfortless_a and_o relieve_v the_o needy_a according_a to_o our_o ability_n for_o his_o sake_n he_o will_v then_o comfort_v we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o sad_a condition_n for_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o he_o know_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n how_o great_a a_o burden_n it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o sorrowful_a soul_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o wise_a man_n 14._o man_n prov._n 18._o 14._o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v but_o if_o we_o hope_v to_o find_v comfort_n in_o our_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n by_o secondary_a mean_n without_o christ_n our_o hope_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o we_o can_v expect_v comfort_n from_o christ_n unless_o we_o be_v true_o sensible_a of_o the_o burden_n of_o our_o misery_n and_o that_o we_o have_v relation_n to_o he_o by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v comfort_v we_o without_o he_o what_o true_a comfort_n can_v we_o have_v in_o our_o riches_n and_o honour_n if_o we_o do_v not_o enjoy_v christ_n with_o they_o and_o if_o we_o have_v not_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o by_o our_o true_a repentance_n what_o ease_n can_v the_o best_a physic_n give_v we_o in_o our_o pain_n or_o sickness_n if_o god_n do_v not_o send_v the_o physician_n and_o also_o bless_v the_o physic_n we_o take_v yea_o what_o angel_n can_v comfort_v we_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n if_o god_n do_v not_o send_v he_o to_o give_v we_o some_o assurance_n of_o his_o love_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o in_o sickness_n we_o use_v the_o lawful_a mean_n of_o our_o health_n and_o recovery_n and_o in_o our_o trouble_n to_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o our_o comfort_n and_o deliverance_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n that_o we_o shall_v rest_v upon_o the_o mean_n without_o he_o but_o first_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n and_o with_o all_o humble_a reverence_n make_v know_v our_o state_n and_o condition_n to_o he_o and_o withal_o to_o crave_v his_o blessing_n upon_o the_o mean_v we_o shall_v use_v according_a to_o our_o several_a necessity_n and_o thus_o we_o shall_v receive_v from_o god_n what_o we_o desire_v or_o else_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n to_o wait_v upon_o god_n for_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o our_o prayer_n until_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o return_v we_o a_o gracious_a answer_n for_o 44._o for_o mat._n 26._o 44._o christ_n pray_v three_o time_n in_o his_o agony_n before_o he_o have_v any_o answer_n from_o his_o heavenly_a father_n and_o as_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o agony_n do_v increase_v so_o the_o fervency_n and_o zeal_n of_o his_o prayer_n be_v strong_a but_o such_o be_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v over_o wait_v upon_o he_o when_o we_o be_v in_o trouble_n if_o he_o do_v not_o send_v we_o help_v and_o succour_v when_o we_o expect_v it_o neither_o can_v we_o with_o christian_a constancy_n persevere_v in_o our_o prayer_n if_o god_n do_v not_o grant_v our_o request_n at_o our_o own_o time_n and_o according_a to_o our_o own_o desire_n except_o he_o do_v assist_v and_o strengthen_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n for_o it_o be_v god_n peculiar_a work_n to_o corroborate_v our_o mind_n and_o to_o confirm_v our_o heart_n with_o a_o settle_a resolution_n to_o rest_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o our_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v soon_o start_v aside_o at_o the_o fear_n of_o every_o temptation_n and_o trouble_n also_o such_o be_v our_o security_n and_o carelessnesse_n that_o we_o regard_v not_o the_o sorrow_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n we_o can_v mourn_v though_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o great_a heaviness_n through_o affliction_n we_o can_v watch_v though_o we_o see_v eminent_a danger_n our_o eye_n be_v so_o dim_a and_o heavy_a that_o we_o can_v see_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o be_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o upon_o a_o people_n 43._o people_n mat._n 26._o 43._o the_o disciple_n be_v asleep_a when_o christ_n be_v in_o this_o sharp_a agony_n 5_o agony_n jon._n 1._o 4_o 5_o jo●as_n be_v also_o fast_o asleep_a in_o the_o ship_n when_o it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v break_v with_o a_o mighty_a tempest_n thus_o be_v the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n subject_a to_o the_o like_a infirmity_n and_o fail_n through_o the_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o will_v sometime_o prevail_v against_o the_o spiritual_a part_n that_o be_v in_o they_o consider_v further_o that_o as_o the_o first_o adam_n lose_v that_o happiness_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o creation_n in_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o as_o much_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n as_o the_o whole_a earth_n can_v afford_v so_o the_o second_o adam_n christ_n jesus_n our_o dear_a saviour_n begin_v his_o passion_n in_o a_o garden_n to_o repair_v our_o lose_a happiness_n whither_o christ_n do_v often_o resort_v to_o refresh_v himself_o and_o for_o his_o own_o private_a devotion_n and_o yet_o there_o the_o devil_n do_v seduce_v our_o first_o parent_n and_o here_o also_o he_o do_v violent_o assault_v our_o bless_a redeemer_n to_o cause_v the_o one_o to_o fall_v and_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o other_o in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n thus_o the_o devil_n lay_v his_o trap_n and_o snare_n in_o our_o lawful_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o catch_v we_o at_o advantage_n and_o to_o make_v we_o sin_n against_o our_o god_n and_o thus_o also_o he_o do_v endeavour_v to_o hinder_v we_o in_o our_o holy_a devotion_n and_o in_o any_o special_a work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o to_o do_v how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v free_a from_o his_o evil_a suggestion_n and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v secure_a from_o danger_n though_o we_o can_v be_v no_o where_o free_a from_o his_o temptation_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o the_o evil_n of_o they_o if_o we_o keep_v close_o unto_o christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n though_o the_o devil_n be_v most-malicious_o bend_v to_o do_v we_o hurt_v yet_o christ_n will_v restrain_v his_o power_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o do_v so_o much_o as_o his_o malicious_a will_n desire_v 29._o desire_v isa_n 37._o 29._o for_o he_o will_v put_v a_o hock_v in_o his_o nose_n and_o a_o bridle_n in_o his_o lip_n to_o pull_v he_o back_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v our_o soul_n though_o he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o afflict_v our_o body_n wherefore_o this_o be_v our_o singular_a comfort_n that_o if_o the_o devil_n be_v any_o way_n too_o subtle_a or_o too_o strong_a for_o we_o christ_n will_v give_v we_o heavenly_a wisdom_n to_o prevent_v his_o subtlety_n and_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o overcome_v his_o power_n if_o the_o devil_n do_v suggest_v into_o we_o fear_n and_o doubt_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o afflict_v our_o mind_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o our_o conscience_n or_o to_o perplex_v our_o soul_n christ_n will_v sweet_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v we_o with_o more_o assurance_n thereof_o by_o faith_n also_o if_o he_o do_v call_v our_o sin_n to_o remembrance_n and_o do_v lay_v they_o before_o we_o with_o their_o several_a aggravation_n to_o affright_v and_o terrify_v we_o and_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n christ_n will_v show_v we_o the_o clot_n of_o blood_n which_o he_o do_v sweat_n in_o his_o agony_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o the_o wound_n that_o be_v make_v in_o his_o body_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v
be_v not_o convey_v to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n as_o it_o i●_n to_o the_o ear_n and_o to_o the_o hand_n by_o the_o minister_n also_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a appetite_n to_o it_o that_o our_o heart●_n may_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o it_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o sweet_a savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n unto_o we_o but_o rather_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n if_o the_o devil_n can_v bereave_v we_o of_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o make_v we_o lose_v the_o opportunity_n of_o it_o and_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o do_v judas_n he_o will_v then_o lead_v we_o on_o in_o a_o sinful_a and_o wicked_a course_n of_o life_n until_o he_o do_v bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a perdition_n thus_o by_o degree_n he_o bring_v judas_n from_o infidelity_n to_o hardness_n of_o heart_n after_o he_o have_v take_v possession_n of_o he_o until_o at_o last_o he_o fall_v into_o despair_n and_o become_v his_o own_o executioner_n for_o his_o damnable_a treason_n against_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n for_o present_o after_o he_o hang_v himself_o 8._o himself_o act._n 1._o 8._o he_o burst_v asunder_o in_o the_o midst_n and_o all_o his_o bowel_n gush_v out_o thus_o do_v god_n give_v he_o his_o just_a reward_n for_o his_o horrible_a sin_n and_o impiety_n against_o christ_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v one_o of_o his_o disciple_n and_o have_v as_o much_o mean_n of_o grace_n as_o the_o rest_n have_v and_o also_o as_o many_o common_a and_o external_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o they_o have_v and_o do_v see_v the_o great_a work_n that_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o thus_o will_v god_n show_v his_o justice_n and_o judgement_n upon_o impenitent_a and_o notorious_a offender_n that_o be_v so_o harden_v in_o their_o sin_n that_o no_o mean_n of_o grace_n can_v bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n now_o examine_v thyself_o thou_o that_o daily_o see_v the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n if_o thou_o can_v look_v beyond_o nature_n and_o see_v his_o power_n and_o wise_a providence_n in_o they_o if_o thou_o can_v discern_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n when_o great_a man_n be_v bring_v down_o and_o man_n of_o low_a degree_n be_v exalt_v also_o if_o thou_o can_v see_v how_o god_n will_v bring_v to_o pass_v his_o own_o design_n against_o all_o opposition_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o that_o he_o can_v discover_v the_o hellish_a plot_n and_o magination_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n 15._o instrument_n plal._n 7._o 15._o and_o will_v make_v they_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o pit_n which_o they_o have_v dig_v for_o other_o 10._o other_o esth_n 1._o 10._o as_o he_o do_v unto_o wicked_a haman_n if_o thou_o see_v these_o and_o the_o like_a thing_n come_v to_o pass_v thou_o must_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n peter_n do_v see_v the_o great_a work_n of_o christ_n &_o he_o do_v believe_v that_o they_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n judas_n do_v also_o see_v the_o same_o work_n but_o he_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o if_o thy_o condition_n be_v like_a unto_o that_o of_o peter_n that_o thou_o can_v see_v a_o divine_a power_n in_o the_o great_a work_n that_o be_v wrought_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o god_n by_o his_o wisdom_n and_o providence_n can_v dispose_v of_o all_o the_o troublesome_a chance_n and_o change_n that_o happen_v here_o either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n to_o the_o good_a of_o his_o people_n and_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o he_o and_o their_o enemy_n then_o thou_o do_v right_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o god_n by_o a_o spiritual_a illumination_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o heart_n but_o if_o with_o judas_n thou_o can_v not_o discern_v god_n divine_a power_n in_o his_o work_n on_o earth_n to_o over-rule_v all_o adversary_n power_n 2._o power_n psal_n 2._o 2._o though_o they_o rage_n in_o fury_n and_o take_v counsel_n together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o anointed_n then_o thy_o understanding_n be_v blind_v and_o thou_o lie_v open_a to_o all_o kind_n of_o danger_n and_o distraction_n of_o mind_n search_v again_o into_o thy_o own_o heart_n thou_o that_o live_v where_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v sincere_o preach_v and_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n right_o and_o due_o administer_v and_o examine_v thyself_o with_o what_o affection_n thou_o do_v come_v to_o those_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n what_o grace_n be_v wrought_v in_o thou_o and_o how_o thy_o faith_n be_v strengthen_v by_o they_o how_o much_o sin_n be_v weaken_v and_o how_o thy_o life_n be_v reform_v also_o examine_v what_o spiritual_a life_n thou_o have_v what_o fruit_n it_o do_v bring_v forth_o what_o care_v thou_o have_v to_o nourish_v it_o by_o thy_o profitable_a hear_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o thy_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n if_o thou_o can_v give_v a_o good_a account_n that_o thou_o have_v spend_v thy_o time_n profitable_o and_o have_v improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o best_a advantage_n then_o thou_o be_v a_o faithful_a servant_n to_o thy_o lord_n and_o master_n jesus_n christ_n as_o peter_n be_v but_o if_o this_o heavenly_a food_n will_v not_o please_v thy_o palate_n it_o can_v nourish_v and_o comfort_v thy_o soul_n because_o thou_o have_v some_o secret_a corruption_n or_o some_o belove_a sin_n that_o keep_v the_o sweet_a influence_n of_o grace_n from_o thy_o heart_n and_o then_o thou_o will_v reap_v as_o little_a benefit_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n as_o wretched_a judas_n do_v though_o he_o hear_v christ_n himself_o preach_v to_o he_o sure_o god_n do_v still_o send_v down_o this_o heavenly_a manna_n bless_v be_v his_o holy_a name_n for_o it_o and_o thou_o may_v gather_v it_o for_o the_o nourishment_n and_o comfort_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o thou_o will_v but_o if_o thou_o can_v find_v no_o spiritual_a sweetness_n in_o it_o thy_o taste_n be_v not_o then_o spiritual_a but_o it_o be_v dull_v with_o worldly_a care_n or_o sinful_a pleasure_n which_o must_v be_v purge_v out_o of_o thy_o heart_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o thou_o can_v with_o peter_n take_v pleasure_n and_o delight_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n 68_o christ_n john_n 6._o 68_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o before_o thou_o can_v make_v it_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o heart_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o statute_n of_o god_n how_o can_v thou_o hazard_v thy_o life_n for_o christ_n as_o peter_n do_v and_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o gospel_n if_o thou_o be_v not_o well_o instruct_v and_o a_o good_a proficient_a in_o his_o school_n and_o how_o can_v thou_o live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o god_n if_o thy_o heart_n have_v not_o suck_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o christ_n by_o faith_n who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o this_o water_n of_o life_n and_o of_o this_o celestial_a food_n to_o nourish_v thou_o up_o to_o everlasting_a life_n look_v now_o a_o little_a upon_o peter_n zeal_n for_o his_o master_n safety_n he_o resist_v those_o that_o come_v to_o apprehend_v he_o 11._o he_o john_n 18._o 10_o 11._o and_o smite_v the_o high_a priest_n servant_n but_o christ_n cure_v the_o wound_n and_o rebuke_v peter_n for_o it_o because_o his_o zeal_n be_v not_o well_o ground_v for_o he_o do_v endeavour_v to_o hinder_v he_o in_o the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v he_o to_o do_v concern_v man_n redemption_n and_o therefore_o christ_n say_v unto_o he_o the_o cup_n which_o my_o father_n have_v give_v i_o shall_v i_o not_o drink_v it_o this_o may_v teach_v we_o to_o drink_v willing_o any_o cup_n of_o affliction_n that_o our_o heavenly_a father_n shall_v give_v we_o for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a to_o we_o if_o we_o receive_v it_o from_o god_n as_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o father_n also_o that_o holy_a zeal_n or_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n in_o god_n cause_n be_v a_o duty_n which_o he_o require_v and_o his_o servant_n do_v practice_v it_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v regulate_v according_a to_o knowledge_n and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o blind_a zeal_n will_v lead_v we_o into_o many_o error_n david_n zeal_n be_v right_o regulate_v 139._o regulate_v psal_n 119._o 139._o my_o zeal_n say_v he_o have_v consume_v i_o because_o thy_o enemy_n have_v forget_v thy_o word_n 12._o word_n num._n 25._o 11_o 12._o such_o be_v the_o zeal_n of_o phinehas_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o zimri_n and_o cozby_n which_o turn_v away_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o the_o
use_v the_o power_n of_o angel_n for_o his_o defence_n nor_o his_o own_o divine_a power_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o their_o fury_n and_o rage_n for_o though_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n they_o be_v smite_v to_o the_o ground_n yet_o he_o suffer_v they_o to_o rise_v again_o and_o he_o do_v voluntary_o put_v himself_o into_o their_o hand_n to_o lead_v he_o away_o whither_o they_o will_v thus_o meek_o do_v christ_n submit_v to_o his_o father_n will_n for_o he_o be_v not_o of_o elijah_n fiery_a spirit_n 1_o spirit_n 2_o king_n 1_o who_o call_v for_o fire_n from_o heaven_n which_o consume_v two_o captain_n and_o their_o fifty_n who_o king_n ahaziah_n send_v to_o apprehend_v he_o the_o disciple_n that_o be_v at_o caesarea_n beseech_v paul_n with_o many_o tear_n not_o to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n because_o agabus_n have_v prophesy_v that_o there_o he_o shall_v be_v bind_v and_o deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o gentile_n yet_o paul_n will_v not_o be_v persuade_v but_o l●ke_v a_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n he_o answer_v they_o thus_o 13._o thus_o act_n 21._o 13._o what_o do_v you_o mean_v to_o weep_v and_o to_o break_v my_o heart_n for_o i_o be_o ready_a not_o to_o be_v bind_v only_o but_o also_o to_o die_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n look_v also_o upon_o the_o admirable_a mildness_n of_o christ_n who_o give_v these_o friendly_a and_o familiar_a word_n to_o that_o wicked_a traitor_n when_o he_o come_v to_o betray_v he_o 50_o he_o mat._n 26_o 50_o friend_n wherefore_o be_v thou_o come_v and_o again_o he_o say_v 44._o say_v luk._n 22._o 44._o judas_n betray_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o a_o kiss_n these_o mild_a and_o gracious_a word_n may_v have_v mollify_v his_o obdurate_a heart_n and_o touch_v his_o conscience_n with_o remorse_n if_o 28_o if_o rom._n 1._o 28_o god_n have_v not_o give_v he_o over_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n this_o be_v to_o teach_v we_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n when_o our_o suppose_a friend_n prove_v treacherous_a and_o when_o our_o kindness_n be_v spiteful_o reward_v for_o we_o be_v command_v by_o christ_n himself_o 48._o himself_o mat._n 5_o 48._o to_o bless_v they_o that_o curse_v we_o to_o love_v our_o enemy_n to_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v we_o and_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o despiteful_o use_v we_o and_o persecute_v we_o as_o christ_n give_v we_o this_o in_o precept_n so_o likewise_o he_o give_v it_o we_o by_o his_o own_o example_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v unpleasing_a to_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o we_o can_v hear_v it_o unless_o christ_n do_v endow_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n by_o the_o example_n of_o these_o two_o disciple_n we_o may_v examine_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n whether_o there_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o to_o make_v we_o faithful_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o can_v stick_v close_o to_o he_o with_o peter_n whatsoever_o we_o shall_v suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n or_o the_o seed_n of_o hypocrisy_n which_o reach_v only_o to_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o name_n when_o there_o be_v no_o opposition_n against_o it_o and_o when_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o advantage_n for_o trouble_n and_o persecution_n will_v make_v a_o hypocrite_n forsake_fw-mi christ_n and_o hope_v of_o lucre_n will_v make_v he_o change_v his_o profession_n of_o he_o as_o it_o do_v judas_n we_o may_v also_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o to_o live_v in_o a_o religious_a family_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o good_a servant_n and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o faithful_a disciple_n of_o christ_n except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v change_v the_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o their_o sinful_a condition_n to_o a_o holy_a conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n wherefore_o let_v this_o be_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o express_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o grace_n by_o our_o faithfulness_n unto_o christ_n in_o all_o our_o suffering_n for_o he_o also_o so_o to_o live_v in_o a_o religious_a family_n and_o so_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n that_o some_o gracious_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v see_v upon_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n by_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n what_o christ_n suffer_v under_o caiaphas_n when_o christ_n be_v apprehend_v they_o bring_v he_o bind_v to_o caiaphas_n the_o high_a priest_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o malefactor_n where_o he_o be_v examine_v 26._o examine_v mat._n 26._o spit_v upon_o buffet_v smite_v deride_v and_o most_o spiteful_o use_v they_o seek_v false_a witness_n against_o he_o but_o find_v none_o that_o do_v agree_v one_o with_o another_o notwithstanding_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n to_o complain_v or_o to_o clear_v his_o own_o innocency_n that_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o he_o may_v be_v fulfil_v 7._o fulfil_v isa_n 53._o 7._o he_o be_v bring_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o as_o a_o sheep_n before_o her_o shearer_n be_v d●mb_n so_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n his_o own_o nation_n the_o jew_n do_v offer_v those_o blasphemous_a indignity_n to_o he_o for_o they_o be_v ever_o a_o rebellious_a and_o stiffnecked_a people_n 2._o people_n ezech._n 2._o which_o make_v the_o lord_n so_o much_o and_o so_o often_o to_o complain_v of_o they_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o they_o be_v still_o malicious_o bend_v against_o they_o because_o they_o rebuke_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n and_o rebellion_n against_o god_n whereby_o we_o may_v see_v how_o near_o it_o come_v unto_o god_n himself_o when_o his_o own_o people_n and_o they_o that_o profess_v his_o name_n prove_v disobedient_a and_o rebellious_a to_o he_o but_o they_o can_v find_v no_o fault_n with_o christ_n 46._o christ_n joh._n 8._o 46._o they_o can_v not_o convince_v he_o of_o any_o sin_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n ever_o find_v in_o his_o lip_n he_o do_v miraculous_o feed_v the_o hungry_a he_o cure_v the_o disease_a he_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n he_o cast_v out_o the_o devil_n he_o observe_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n and_o pay_v his_o tribute_n unto_o caesar_n and_o yet_o their_o rage_n and_o malice_n against_o he_o be_v full_a of_o cruelty_n because_o he_o lay_v open_v their_o gross_a hypocrisy_n and_o condemn_v their_o vain_a tradition_n and_o because_o he_o discover_v the_o unfaithfulness_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o the_o evil_a of_o their_o way_n such_o be_v the_o wilful_a blindness_n of_o their_o rabbi_n that_o they_o will_v not_o know_v christ_n nor_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n that_o be_v promise_v though_o his_o doctrine_n be_v most_o pure_a and_o powerful_a and_o his_o life_n suitable_a thereunto_o though_o he_o have_v wrought_v many_o great_a miracle_n among_o they_o and_o though_o most_o of_o their_o prophet_n have_v so_o plain_o foretold_v of_o he_o which_o be_v fulfil_v in_o their_o day_n for_o they_o stumble_v at_o his_o low_a condition_n of_o life_n and_o can_v not_o see_v the_o excellency_n and_o great_a worth_n that_o be_v in_o he_o though_o the_o wicked_a jew_n do_v use_v opprobrious_a word_n and_o blasphemous_a speech_n against_o our_o sweet_a saviour_n and_o though_o they_o do_v disdainful_o abuse_v he_o and_o unjust_o seek_v matter_n against_o he_o by_o false_a witness_n that_o they_o may_v accuse_v he_o before_o the_o roman_a governor_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n yet_o he_o do_v show_v divine_a patience_n and_o give_v not_o the_o least_o word_n of_o offence_n to_o his_o enemy_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v thus_o strong_o provoke_v he_o to_o it_o if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v this_o it_o will_v teach_v we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o when_o we_o be_v under_o the_o like_a suffering_n also_o it_o will_v keep_v we_o humble_a mind_a and_o lowly_a not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o spiritual_a pride_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v for_o than_o we_o shall_v give_v the_o devil_n great_a advantage_n against_o we_o he_o will_v blind_v our_o understanding_n that_o we_o can_v right_o discern_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o just_a and_o he_o will_v infect_v our_o heart_n with_o hypocrisy_n so_o that_o other_o shall_v be_v seduce_v and_o beguile_v by_o our_o outward_a show_n of_o godliness_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o sincerity_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o at_o last_o our_o feign_a holiness_n will_v be_v discover_v 5_o discover_v 2_o tim._n 3._o 5_o because_o we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n and_o regard_v not_o to_o have_v the_o power_n of_o it_o in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n who_o be_v so_o proud_a of_o their_o outward_a holiness_n as_o the_o scribe_n and_o
ignominy_n and_o such_o blasphemy_n to_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o and_o if_o he_o can_v not_o deliver_v himself_o than_o peter_n will_v bring_v himself_o into_o many_o peril_n and_o danger_n if_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n will_v use_v he_o far_o worse_o than_o they_o do_v his_o master_n also_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o some_o way_n or_o other_o offend_v though_o peter_n do_v not_o know_v it_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n will_v not_o be_v so_o cruel_o bend_v against_o he_o these_o or_o the_o like_a suggestion_n the_o devil_n do_v probable_o cast_v into_o peter_n mind_n to_o increase_v his_o fear_n to_o weaken_v his_o faith_n and_o to_o overthrow_v that_o confidence_n which_o he_o have_v in_o christ_n thus_o the_o sting_n of_o that_o old_a serpent_n go_v along_o with_o the_o word_n of_o a_o silly_a damosel_n which_o peter_n do_v not_o suspect_v and_o they_o enter_v so_o deep_a into_o he_o that_o they_o poison_v his_o heart_n with_o unbelief_n and_o make_v he_o to_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o jesus_n and_o also_o he_o begin_v to_o curse_v and_o swear_v that_o he_o know_v he_o not_o 32._o not_o luk._n 22_o 31_o 32._o though_o christ_n have_v tell_v he_o that_o satan_n desire_v to_o sift_v he_o as_o wheat_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v thrice_o deny_v he_o before_o the_o cock_n do_v crow_v which_o be_v to_o make_v he_o the_o more_o watchful_a over_o his_o word_n and_o the_o more_o careful_a of_o himself_o yet_o he_o do_v dangerous_o fall_v from_o his_o dear_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o he_o have_v not_o recover_v himself_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o his_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v for_o he_o know_v that_o peter_n be_v not_o able_a by_o his_o own_o power_n to_o withstand_v such_o a_o strong_a temptation_n but_o will_v be_v shameful_o foil_v in_o it_o though_o he_o be_v so_o confident_a of_o his_o own_o strength_n when_o peter_n be_v in_o this_o fearful_a condition_n by_o his_o great_a sin_n through_o the_o cunning_a of_o the_o devil_n christ_n do_v gracious_o look_v back_o upon_o he_o and_o touch_v his_o heart_n with_o his_o spirit_n 14._o spirit_n mark_n 14._o and_o make_v he_o remember_v the_o crow_n of_o the_o cock_n which_o be_v the_o token_n of_o remembrance_n that_o christ_n give_v he_o then_o peter_n know_v how_o heinous_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o then_o also_o he_o present_o go_v out_o from_o that_o wicked_a company_n to_o avoid_v further_a occasion_n of_o sin_v and_o weep_v bitter_o which_o be_v a_o true_a testimony_n of_o the_o sorrow_n of_o his_o heart_n because_o he_o have_v so_o gross_o deny_v his_o dear_a master_n here_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n if_o god_n do_v not_o still_o uphold_v we_o with_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n for_o our_o passion_n will_v overpower_v we_o our_o sin_n will_v prevail_v against_o we_o and_o every_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n will_v make_v we_o let_v go_v the_o anchor_n of_o our_o hope_n in_o god_n if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n prayer_n that_o our_o faith_n fail_v not_o in_o these_o our_o spiritual_a conflict_n here_o also_o we_o may_v see_v what_o deep_a impression_n sudden_a fear_n will_v sometime_o make_v in_o our_o heart_n for_o it_o will_v sink_v our_o spirit_n and_o take_v away_o all_o humane_a strength_n and_o courage_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o joseph_n brethren_n when_o they_o find_v their_o money_n in_o their_o sack_n mouth_n 28._o mouth_n gen._n 42._o 28._o for_o their_o heart_n fail_v and_o they_o be_v afraid_a the_o canaanite_n be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 25._o israel_n denr_n 11._o 25._o because_o the_o lord_n do_v lay_v the_o fear_n of_o they_o and_o the_o dread_n of_o they_o upon_o all_o the_o land_n sudden_a fear_n will_v also_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o as_o it_o wrought_v upon_o peter_n at_o this_o time_n this_o be_v a_o humane_a passion_n that_o all_o man_n be_v subject_a unto_o but_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o a_o watchful_a eye_n be_v the_o best_a preservative_n against_o it_o for_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v 5._o say_v psal_n 53._o 4_o 5._o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n be_v in_o great_a fear_n where_o no_o fear_n be_v because_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n lie_v upon_o their_o conscience_n here_o also_o we_o may_v discover_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o put_v his_o hook_n into_o such_o plausible_a and_o harmless_a bait_n as_o do_v give_v we_o no_o occasion_n to_o suspect_v any_o hurt_n or_o danger_n whereby_o we_o be_v easy_o bring_v under_o his_o power_n if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n to_o escape_v they_o wherefore_o we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o stand_v continual_o upon_o our_o watch_n and_o to_o suspect_v our_o own_o strength_n and_o to_o be_v careful_a what_o we_o speak_v and_o what_o we_o hear_v what_o we_o do_v and_o what_o we_o see_v do_v what_o step_v we_o tread_v and_o what_o company_n we_o come_v into_o for_o there_o may_v be_v much_o danger_n where_o we_o see_v no_o appearance_n of_o it_o let_v peter_n example_n keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o strength_n lest_o god_n do_v permit_v the_o devil_n to_o winnow_v we_o as_o wheat_n that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o weak_a we_o ●re_n without_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o to_o make_v we_o afraid_a of_o fall_v into_o temptation_n this_o fear_n be_v not_o slavish_a but_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o a_o true_a filial_a fear_n which_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o all_o occasion_n of_o sin_n whereby_o god_n may_v be_v dishonour_v and_o it_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o a_o holy_a care_n how_o to_o walk_v circumspect_o before_o god_n in_o all_o piety_n and_o godliness_n it_o will_v also_o restrain_v we_o from_o all_o sinful_a desire_n and_o put_v we_o forward_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o holy_a duty_n from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v draw_v sweet_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n though_o the_o measure_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o other_o grace_n be_v but_o small_a for_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o leave_n and_o permission_n from_o god_n who_o will_v not_o give_v he_o power_n against_o we_o above_o our_o strength_n but_o will_v restrain_v he_o from_o effect_v that_o which_o his_o malicious_a will_n do_v intend_v and_o purpose_n for_o our_o hurt_n he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o sift_v we_o with_o his_o temptation_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n he_o may_v bring_v trouble_n and_o affliction_n upon_o we_o as_o he_o do_v upon_o job_n but_o he_o shall_v never_o overthrow_v our_o faith_n nor_o quite_o bereave_v we_o of_o hope_n for_o god_n will_v so_o order_v and_o dispose_v of_o our_o suffering_n that_o they_o shall_v procure_v our_o good_a either_o to_o purge_v we_o from_o some_o corruption_n that_o we_o cherish_v or_o else_o to_o make_v we_o keep_v more_o close_o to_o our_o god_n and_o this_o be_v our_o great_a comfort_n that_o christ_n have_v pray_v for_o we_o that_o our_o faith_n may_v hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n though_o the_o combat_n we_o fight_v be_v very_o difficult_a and_o dangerous_a and_o our_o strength_n very_o weak_a affliction_n and_o cross_n will_v try_v our_o patience_n scorn_n and_o reproach_n will_v try_v the_o meekness_n of_o our_o spirit_n want_v and_o penury_n will_v try_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n anguish_n of_o soul_n for_o sin_n will_v try_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o christ_n want_v of_o answer_n to_o our_o prayer_n will_v try_v the_o fervency_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o they_o and_o the_o fear_n of_o persecution_n or_o torment_n will_v try_v our_o constancy_n and_o perseverence_n in_o the_o truth_n if_o we_o find_v any_o grace_n weak_a in_o we_o christ_n will_v make_v it_o strong_a if_o we_o sue_v unto_o he_o for_o it_o by_o our_o faithful_a prayer_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n rest_v upon_o he_o that_o grace_n may_v plentifullie_o flow_v down_o to_o all_o that_o have_v interest_n in_o he_o by_o faith_n 2._o faith_n psal_n 13._o 3._o 2._o like_o the_o precious_a ointment_n that_o be_v pour_v upon_o aaron_n head_n which_o go_v down_o to_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o garment_n if_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n that_o we_o be_v daily_a subject_n to_o divers_a temptation_n which_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v neither_o prevent_v nor_o overcome_v we_o must_v then_o keep_v close_o to_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n and_o redeemer_n who_o only_o can_v keep_v we_o from_o they_o or_o preserve_v we_o in_o they_o 13._o they_o 1_o cor._n 30._o 13._o
make_v thou_o out_o of_o hope_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n but_o thou_o will_v resolve_v still_o to_o be_v faithful_a to_o thy_o saviour_n and_o to_o keep_v thy_o heart_n sincere_a and_o upright_a towards_o god_n and_o than_o christ_n will_v restore_v thou_o if_o thou_o fall_v he_o will_v heal_v thou_o by_o repentance_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n if_o thou_o be_v wound_v and_o whatsoever_o thou_o fear_v shall_v not_o dismay_v thou_o christ_n will_v be_v thy_o comfort_n in_o all_o thy_o sorrow_n thy_o hide_v place_n in_o all_o danger_n and_o he_o will_v be_v thy_o defence_n against_o all_o thy_o spiritual_a enemy_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o overthrow_v the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n christ_n suffering_n under_o pilate_n now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v what_o christ_n suffer_v under_o pilate_n and_o how_o the_o immaculate_a lamb_n of_o god_n be_v hurry_v from_o the_o wolf_n to_o the_o lion_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o bear_n and_o back_o again_o to_o the_o lion_n and_o so_o to_o the_o shambles_n where_o he_o must_v be_v slay_v for_o the_o more_o his_o divine_a grace_n do_v shine_v forth_o in_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n the_o more_o do_v the_o devil_n rage_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o jew_n increase_v against_o he_o he_o be_v now_o bring_v before_o pilate_n 23._o pilate_n luk_n 23._o and_o thither_o do_v the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n come_v with_o their_o false_a accusation_n against_o he_o they_o likewise_o follow_v he_o from_o pilate_n to_o herod_n before_o who_o also_o they_o false_o accuse_v he_o with_o much_o vehemency_n yet_o they_o rest_v not_o there_o but_o they_o return_v again_o to_o pilate_n with_o their_o heart_n full_a of_o envy_n and_o malice_n and_o their_o mouth_n full_a of_o opprobrious_a speech_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o innocent_a lamb_n of_o god_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n thus_o they_o persecute_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n and_o yet_o these_o wicked_a dissemble_a ruler_n do_v hide_v and_o cover_v their_o gross_a hypocrisy_n and_o their_o devilish_a malice_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o sanctity_n and_o holiness_n 28_o holiness_n joh_n 18._o 28_o for_o they_o refuse_v to_o go_v into_o pilate_n judgement-hall_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v defile_v but_o that_o they_o may_v eat_v the_o passeover_n for_o this_o be_v the_o preparation_n day_n what_o holiness_n can_v there_o be_v in_o a_o malicious_a heart_n how_o can_v the_o heart_n be_v prepare_v to_o serve_v god_n aright_o when_o the_o conscience_n be_v stain_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o how_o dare_v they_o eat_v the_o passover_n when_o there_o be_v so_o much_o sour_a leaven_n of_o hateful_a malice_n in_o they_o but_o they_o do_v stand_v more_o upon_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o godliness_n then_o to_o perform_v it_o with_o pure_a affection_n and_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n now_o we_o may_v easy_o see_v what_o satan_n drift_n be_v against_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n for_o if_o he_o do_v stir_v up_o all_o his_o instrument_n to_o persecute_v christ_n jesus_n our_o head_n with_o deadly_a hatred_n he_o will_v not_o spare_v we_o that_o be_v his_o member_n and_o he_o will_v set_v upon_o those_o that_o be_v most_o eminent_a in_o grace_n with_o his_o strong_a assault_n thus_o he_o assault_v job_n with_o many_o and_o great_a affliction_n one_o upon_o the_o neck_n of_o another_o to_o overthrow_v his_o patience_n 1._o patience_n 1_o chro._n 21._o 1._o thus_o he_o strong_o tempt_v david_n to_o number_v the_o people_n to_o make_v he_o trust_v in_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n and_o to_o weaken_v his_o confidence_n in_o god_n 7._o god_n 2_o cor._n 12._o 7._o and_o thus_o he_o buffet_v paul_n with_o his_o temptation_n and_o many_o sore_a affliction_n but_o this_o be_v our_o comfort_n that_o he_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o god_n do_v permit_v he_o he_o can_v exercise_v his_o power_n according_a to_o his_o malice_n for_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o assault_v his_o weak_a servant_n with_o strong_a temptation_n and_o though_o he_o do_v sometime_o permit_v he_o violent_o to_o set_v upon_o those_o that_o be_v rich_a in_o grace_n and_o strong_a in_o faith_n yet_o he_o will_v order_v and_o dispose_v his_o attempt_n for_o their_o good_a and_o not_o for_o their_o destruction_n as_o the_o devil_n do_v malicious_o intend_v god_n will_v make_v they_o serve_v for_o the_o trial_n and_o manifestation_n of_o their_o grace_n for_o the_o prevent_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o affiance_n in_o god_n by_o that_o experience_n of_o his_o assistance_n and_o gracious_a deliverance_n which_o hereby_o they_o have_v gain_v from_o hence_o we_o may_v learn_v how_o to_o be_v prepare_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n to_o eat_v of_o his_o holy_a supper_n how_o to_o come_v to_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o word_n and_o how_o to_o address_v ourselves_o unto_o prayer_n and_o to_o pious_a meditation_n if_o we_o come_v to_o these_o holy_a ordinance_n with_o pollute_a hand_n and_o with_o heart_n defile_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n as_o these_o ruler_n do_v to_o eat_v the_o passover_n what_o holiness_n soever_o we_o pretend_v we_o do_v but_o dissemble_v with_o god_n we_o delude_v our_o own_o soul_n and_o god_n will_v neither_o hear_v we_o nor_o accept_v we_o wherefore_o we_o must_v cast_v out_o the_o leaven_n of_o sin_n and_o purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o we_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n that_o our_o affection_n may_v be_v quicken_v and_o raise_v up_o to_o these_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a ordinance_n of_o god_n but_o if_o our_o sin_n do_v stick_v close_o to_o our_o soul_n by_o our_o delight_n in_o they_o they_o will_v bind_v we_o over_o to_o judgement_n and_o to_o condemnation_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v to_o hide_v they_o or_o to_o colour_v they_o over_o with_o fair_a pretence_n as_o if_o god_n can_v not_o see_v they_o but_o we_o must_v confess_v they_o and_o lay_v they_o open_v before_o god_n from_o a_o true_o humble_v and_o penitent_a heart_n that_o so_o we_o may_v come_v before_o he_o in_o sincerity_n and_o in_o truth_n for_o 21._o for_o psal_n 44._o 21._o god_n know_v the_o secret_n of_o our_o heart_n but_o if_o we_o will_v hide_v our_o sin_n quite_o out_o of_o god_n sight_n we_o must_v hide_v they_o under_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o hide_v place_n for_o sin_n but_o under_o this_o robe_n thus_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v hide_v from_o god_n if_o we_o can_v apply_v to_o our_o soul_n christ_n crucify_v and_o his_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n also_o if_o we_o have_v a_o true_a assurance_n by_o our_o repentance_n that_o our_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v we_o may_v then_o and_o not_o before_o draw_v near_o unto_o god_n with_o comfort_n and_o we_o may_v partake_v of_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n with_o much_o profit_n for_o they_o be_v appoint_v for_o we_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o prepare_v for_o they_o and_o bestow_v only_o upon_o such_o as_o have_v interest_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o come_v now_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o innocency_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n who_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n both_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o have_v save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n thus_o say_v god_n himself_o of_o he_o 5._o he_o luk._n 17._o 5._o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v 46_o please_v john_n 8._o 46_o which_o of_o you_o say_v christ_n to_o the_o pharisee_n convince_v i_o of_o sin_n pilate_n and_o herod_n do_v strict_o examine_v he_o and_o yet_o they_o can_v find_v no_o fault_n in_o he_o 14._o he_o luk._n 23._o 14._o pilate_n himself_o do_v free_o confess_v that_o christ_n be_v blameless_a and_o therefore_o he_o seek_v mean_n how_o to_o release_v he_o also_o 19_o also_o mat._n 27._o 19_o his_o wife_n send_v to_o he_o say_v have_v thou_o nothing_o to_o do_v with_o that_o just_a man_n for_o she_o be_v much_o trouble_v that_o night_n by_o some_o revelation_n concern_v he_o though_o christ_n be_v accuse_v of_o many_o thing_n yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v prove_v against_o he_o notwithstanding_o christ_n be_v willing_a in_o obedience_n to_o his_o father_n will_n to_o suffer_v the_o utmost_a that_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o man_n redemption_n for_o if_o any_o part_n of_o this_o great_a work_n have_v be_v leave_v unfinished_a he_o can_v never_o have_v procure_v our_o atonement_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n wherefore_o here_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a comfort_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o for_o
jew_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o refuse_v we_o last_o consider_v that_o pilate_n do_v high_o honour_v our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o write_v this_o title_n to_o be_v set_v over_o his_o head_n upon_o the_o cross_n 10._o cross_n jon_n 2d_o 10._o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v a_o title_n of_o great_a honour_n and_o not_o of_o shame_n and_o disgrace_n unto_o he_o their_o manner_n be_v to_o set_v up_o a_o superscription_n to_o show_v the_o crime_n why_o a_o malefactor_n be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o pilate_n can_v find_v no_o crime_n and_o no_o fault_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o write_v this_o superscription_n to_o clear_v his_o innocence_n and_o to_o brand_v the_o jew_n with_o perpetual_a ignominy_n and_o shame_n to_o all_o generation_n for_o their_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n against_o he_o for_o though_o pilate_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o king_n and_o though_o he_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o by_o the_o people_n to_o condemn_v he_o and_o to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v persuade_v by_o they_o to_o alter_v the_o title_n but_o to_o have_v it_o write_v in_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a that_o all_o nation_n and_o language_n may_v know_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o person_n and_o the_o horrible_a wickedness_n of_o the_o bloody_a jew_n in_o kill_v their_o king_n who_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o send_v to_o be_v their_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n also_o to_o make_v their_o name_n odious_a to_o all_o people_n as_o a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o because_o they_o refuse_v the_o sweet_a tender_a of_o his_o grace_n and_o mercy_n and_o kill_v his_o dear_a and_o only_o son_n christ_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o his_o humiliation_n and_o now_o god_n do_v begin_v to_o glorify_v he_o and_o to_o publish_v his_o honour_n and_o his_o great_a name_n by_o the_o high_a authority_n to_o all_o nation_n and_o people_n and_o to_o the_o perpetual_a infamy_n and_o reproach_n of_o all_o his_o enemy_n to_o all_o posterity_n this_o honour_n be_v his_o due_n and_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o loose_v it_o and_o thus_o god_n will_v do_v for_o we_o also_o if_o we_o be_v make_v the_o scorn_n of_o man_n if_o we_o suffer_v persecution_n fire_n sword_z or_o famine_n in_o a_o good_a cause_n and_o if_o we_o die_v upon_o this_o cross_n yet_o god_n will_v manifest_v the_o integrity_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o will_v give_v we_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o we_o as_o his_o servant_n and_o his_o child_n for_o if_o we_o drink_v of_o christ_n bitter_a cup_n of_o sorrow_n we_o shall_v also_o drink_v of_o his_o pleasant_a cup_n of_o joy_n and_o consolation_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o passion_n of_o thy_o dear_a and_o gracious_a redeemer_n to_o be_v comfortable_a and_o profitable_a to_o thy_o soul_n thou_o must_v not_o look_v upon_o he_o only_o in_o that_o despicable_a condition_n as_o he_o be_v now_o upon_o the_o cross_n to_o the_o outward_a eye_n but_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n thou_o must_v look_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n god_n and_o man_n and_o as_o he_o be_v dignify_v with_o all_o his_o excellency_n and_o title_n of_o honour_n for_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o such_o a_o prophet_n as_o do_v endow_v all_o the_o former_a prophet_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n who_o prophecy_n do_v chief_o concern_v he_o also_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n after_o the_o high_a order_n who_o priesthood_n be_v eternal_a according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o psalmist_n 4._o psalmist_n psal_n 110._o 4._o the_o lord_n swear_v and_o will_v not_o repent_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v so_o likewise_o he_o be_v a_o spiritual_a king_n to_o rule_v his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o elect_a and_o he_o do_v subdue_v all_o his_o enemy_n under_o he_o and_o he_o will_v also_o subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n in_o we_o if_o thou_o can_v thus_o see_v the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n through_o his_o mean_a and_o contemptible_a condition_n and_o if_o thou_o can_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v thy_o redeemer_n and_o all-sufficient_a to_o be_v thy_o saviour_n it_o will_v inflame_v the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n with_o entire_a love_n to_o he_o because_o he_o have_v humble_v himself_o so_o low_o for_o thy_o sake_n it_o will_v make_v thou_o bend_v thy_o ear_n to_o his_o instruction_n for_o he_o will_v teach_v thou_o heavenly_a wisdom_n and_o how_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o godliness_n he_o will_v also_o present_v thy_o prayer_n and_o all_o thy_o holy_a service_n to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o then_o they_o shall_v be_v accept_v and_o this_o will_v also_o work_v a_o reverential_a fear_n in_o thou_o to_o yield_v all_o obedience_n to_o his_o command_n if_o thou_o do_v thus_o look_v upon_o christ_n though_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n it_o will_v give_v thou_o abundant_a comfort_n in_o thy_o suffering_n exceed_v much_o joy_n in_o the_o benefit_n which_o thou_o shall_v have_v by_o his_o passion_n and_o it_o will_v stir_v thou_o up_o to_o a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n to_o thou_o now_o look_v upon_o thy_o own_o unworthiness_n and_o thou_o will_v admire_v the_o mo●●_n that_o christ_n shall_v so_o much_o humble_v himself_o to_o exalt_v thou_o that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v so_o much_o smart_n pain_n and_o torment_n to_o free_v thou_o from_o everlasting_a torment_n and_o burn_n in_o hell_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v loose_v the_o comfort_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o father_n love_n to_o reconcile_v thou_o unto_o god_n and_o to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o thy_o sin_n who_o be_v the_o agent_n in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v what_o agent_n there_o be_v in_o this_o doleful_a tragedy_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n how_o every_o one_o act_v for_o his_o own_o end_n how_o god_n do_v make_v the_o design_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o all_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n to_o work_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o how_o he_o do_v afterward_o bring_v their_o wickedness_n upon_o their_o own_o head_n the_o whole_a passion_n of_o christ_n and_o every_o circumstance_n of_o it_o be_v decree_v from_o eternity_n and_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n be_v the_o first_o and_o principal_a agent_n in_o this_o great_a work_n of_o christ_n passion_n for_o they_o decree_v that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n shall_v be_v sacrifice_v and_o make_v a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v do_v at_o god_n appoint_a time_n for_o god_n the_o father_n send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n for_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n and_o god_n the_o son_n give_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o ransom_n for_o we_o and_o assume_v our_o nature_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o suffer_v the_o whole_a penalty_n of_o the_o law_n for_o we_o also_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v give_v he_o all_o fullness_n of_o grace_n and_o power_n to_o bear_v the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o thereby_o to_o conquer_v sin_n death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o give_v we_o power_n also_o over_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n though_o god_n be_v the_o principal_a agent_n in_o the_o crucify_a of_o christ_n yet_o herein_o he_o have_v no_o evil_a intent_n or_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v without_o sin_n for_o he_o have_v a_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a end_n in_o it_o that_o his_o justice_n may_v be_v satisfy_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n of_o all_o his_o elect_a might_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o precious_a blood_n and_o all_o sufficient_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n but_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o chief_a actor_n in_o the_o wickedness_n and_o cruelty_n of_o this_o sad_a tragedy_n who_o end_n and_o design_n be_v to_o hinder_v our_o salvation_n by_o destroy_v our_o saviour_n and_o this_o he_o do_v seek_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v by_o wicked_a mean_n and_o of_o malice_n to_o mankind_n and_o therefore_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v his_o permission_n from_o god_n he_o raise_v up_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n for_o his_o hellish_a design_n first_o 27._o first_o john_n 13._o 27._o he_o enter_v into_o judas_n and_o take_v possession_n there_o 16._o there_o mat._n 26._o 25_o 16._o who_o out_o of_o covetousness_n sell_v his_o lord_n and_o master_n to_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n for_o thirty_o piece_n of_o silver_n
other_o so_o likewise_o there_o be_v two_o thief_n crucify_v with_o 34._o e_o luk._n 1●_n 34._o christ_n and_o he_o have_v compassion_n on_o the_o one_o but_o he_o reject_v the_o other_o for_o he_o bestow_v his_o grace_n upon_o who_o he_o will_v and_o when_o he_o please_v there_o be_v no_o person_n so_o vile_a no_o condition_n so_o base_a and_o no_o time_n so_o late_o as_o to_o hinder_v christ_n from_o show_v mercy_n to_o a_o poor_a sinner_n that_o be_v true_o sensible_a of_o his_o misery_n and_o feel_v the_o burden_n of_o his_o sin●_n and_o do_v humble_o acknowledge_v his_o miserable_a condition_n and_o his_o unworthiness_n to_o he_o and_o do_v earnest_o sue_v for_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n as_o this_o malefactor_n do_v also_o christ_n will_v not_o refuse_v those_o that_o renounce_v themselves_o and_o their_o own_o merit_n and_o rest_v only_o upon_o his_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n for_o their_o justification_n &_o also_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o his_o promise_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n be_v make_v to_o such_o as_o sigh_v and_o mourn_v for_o their_o transgression_n now_o examine_v thy_o condition_n with_o a_o faithful_a heart_n be_v thou_o a_o malefactor_n and_o a_o grievous_a sinner_n against_o god_n do_v the_o guilt_n of_o thy_o sin_n press_v heavy_a upon_o thou_o do_v desire_v from_o thy_o heart_n to_o be_v ease_v of_o that_o burden_n be_v the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o bitter_a unto_o thou_o though_o it_o be_v when_o thou_o be_v weak_a and_o faint_a and_o ready_a to_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n then_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n confess_v thy_o sin_n unto_o he_o with_o a_o penitent_a heart_n and_o if_o thy_o ear_n be_v spiritual_o open_v thou_o will_v then_o hear_v a_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a answer_n from_o he_o to_o thy_o petition_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v diligent_o search_v the_o scripture_n thou_o will_v find_v some_o promise_n of_o grace_n which_o will_v suit_v with_o thy_o condition_n that_o christ_n have_v make_v to_o such_o as_o thou_o be_v which_o thou_o must_v apply_v to_o thy_o faint_a soul_n by_o true_a faith_n and_o steadfast_a hope_n that_o it_o belong_v unto_o thou_o then_o rest_n upon_o it_o with_o a_o firm_a confidence_n to_o comfort_v thou_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o thy_o reconciliation_n unto_o god_n which_o will_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o all_o thy_o sorrow_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n itself_o which_o to_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v most_o uncomfortable_a and_o death_n be_v most_o fearful_a and_o terrible_a to_o such_o as_o see_v the_o hand-writing_n of_o god_n against_o they_o for_o as_o they_o have_v live_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n so_o they_o die_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n upon_o their_o soul_n without_o forgiveness_n this_o act_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o this_o poor_a sinner_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o it_o be_v a_o special_a work_n of_o mercy_n to_o manifest_v his_o power_n and_o goodness_n to_o he_o even_o at_o the_o last_o hour_n when_o he_o have_v no_o hope_n and_o no_o mean_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n expect_v death_n every_o moment_n and_o also_o it_o be_v to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o limit_v to_o time_n or_o mean_n when_o or_o how_o to_o work_v repentance_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o deject_a sinner_n or_o to_o save_v any_o that_o come_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o sincere_a affection_n though_o it_o be_v immediate_o before_o they_o go_v hence_o and_o shall_v be_v see_v no_o more_o for_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o this_o man_n have_v ever_o any_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n or_o any_o opportunity_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o or_o any_o mean_n of_o grace_n before_o this_o time_n or_o that_o he_o do_v witting_o and_o wilful_o defer_v the_o time_n of_o his_o salvation_n or_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o last_o hour_n or_o desperate_o reserve_v the_o hope_n of_o his_o redemption_n to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n but_o though_o it_o be_v late_o before_o this_o malefactor_n be_v convert_v or_o have_v any_o true_a save_a grace_n wrought_v in_o he_o or_o before_o he_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n yet_o his_o faith_n be_v true_a 41._o true_a luk._n 23._o 41._o and_o he_o make_v a_o good_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o do_v justify_v the_o innocency_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o instant_n of_o time_n when_o none_o of_o his_o friend_n dare_v speak_v in_o his_o cause_n and_o his_o apostle_n either_o doubt_v or_o seem_v to_o stagger_v in_o their_o faith_n of_o his_o divinity_n also_o this_o man_n conversion_n be_v at_o such_o a_o time_n as_o that_o he_o can_v neither_o be_v baptize_v nor_o have_v further_a time_n for_o the_o amendment_n of_o his_o sinful_a life_n here_o be_v much_o matter_n of_o spiritual_a comfort_n if_o we_o due_o consider_v how_o powerful_a true_a faith_n be_v to_o prevail_v with_o christ_n in_o all_o our_o trouble_n sorrow_n and_o necessity_n for_o if_o we_o rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o he_o and_o if_o our_o hope_n and_o confidence_n be_v only_o in_o he_o let_v our_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v what_o it_o will_v he_o will_v not_o deceive_v we_o in_o our_o hope_n nor_o leave_v we_o without_o support_n and_o comfort_n also_o if_o he_o find_v faith_n and_o truth_n in_o our_o heart_n he_o will_v deny_v we_o no_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o crave_v of_o he_o be_v it_o never_o so_o great_a or_o beg_v never_o so_o late_o for_o this_o poor_a sinner_n beg_v heavenly_a happiness_n at_o the_o very_a last_o hour_n of_o his_o life_n when_o he_o have_v no_o time_n to_o express_v any_o thankfulness_n for_o so_o great_a a_o blessing_n and_o yet_o he_o have_v his_o request_n grant_v but_o this_o particular_a act_n of_o christ_n mercy_n make_v no_o general_a rule_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o those_o that_o do_v wilful_o defer_v their_o repentance_n and_o turn_n to_o god_n to_o the_o last_o and_o worst_a part_n of_o their_o life_n not_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o always_o ready_a to_o receive_v the_o true_o humble_v and_o repent_v sinner_n but_o because_o late_a repentance_n be_v seldom_o sound_a god_n will_v not_o bestow_v this_o heavenly_a grace_n at_o their_o pleasure_n who_o do_v willing_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o lose_v the_o opportunity_n that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o for_o it_o and_o do_v rather_o choose_v to_o continue_v still_o in_o their_o sin_n than_o to_o leave_v and_o forsake_v they_o and_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n we_o can_v but_o daily_o see_v what_o mean_v the_o lord_n use_v to_o bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v we_o get_v a_o holy_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n through_o he_o by_o true_a repentance_n his_o law_n do_v show_v we_o the_o deformity_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o what_o we_o have_v just_o deserve_v thereby_o which_o be_v a_o forcible_a mean_n to_o drive_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o he_o to_o have_v redemption_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n the_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v strong_a motive_n to_o make_v we_o seek_v to_o our_o crucify_a redeemer_n that_o they_o may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o his_o blood_n which_o he_o shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n also_o the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n in_o our_o trouble_n sorrow_n and_o affliction_n be_v special_a mean_n which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o use_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o repentance_n but_o special_o if_o we_o find_v by_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o visitation_n that_o it_o be_v for_o some_o particular_a sin_n which_o we_o have_v commit_v we_o ought_v then_o speedy_o to_o repent_v of_o they_o and_o to_o seek_v after_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o ourselves_o by_o faith_n that_o the_o guilt_n of_o such_o sin_n may_v not_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n but_o that_o those_o spiritual_a wound_n which_o they_o have_v make_v in_o we_o may_v be_v quick_o heal_v before_o they_o come_v to_o putrid_a sore_n and_o ulcer_n and_o we_o may_v have_v a_o true_a assurance_n hereof_o by_o our_o repentance_n if_o repentance_n be_v true_o wrought_v in_o we_o there_o will_v be_v such_o a_o holy_a change_n in_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n that_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o sinful_a lust_n of_o our_o flesh_n will_v be_v mortify_v and_o
the_o power_n of_o sin_n will_v be_v kill_v in_o we_o that_o by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o do_v serious_o consider_v these_o thing_n we_o shall_v not_o keep_v at_o so_o far_o a_o distance_n from_o piety_n and_o virtue_n and_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v such_o stranger_n to_o a_o christian_a life_n and_o conversation_n but_o we_o will_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o get_v into_o near_a society_n with_o christ_n by_o true_a save_a faith_n and_o by_o heavenly_a contemplation_n that_o the_o spiritual_a dew_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n may_v distil_v into_o our_o heart_n to_o sanctify_v we_o throughout_o both_o in_o soul_n and_o in_o body_n that_o in_o christ_n we_o may_v be_v make_v new_a creature_n to_o this_o end_n we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o keep_v our_o faith_n still_o in_o action_n and_o continual_o to_o use_v it_o upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o in_o every_o condition_n of_o life_n for_o thereby_o we_o shall_v draw_v strength_n and_o power_n from_o christ_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o through_o all_o temptation_n and_o trial_n and_o to_o support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sorrow_n and_o tribulation_n it_o will_v purify_v our_o heart_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o suffer_v no_o sin_n to_o continue_v with_o we_o without_o repentance_n to_o hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o rare_a example_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o believe_a thief_n may_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n because_o 22._o because_o ezech._n 18_o 21_o 22._o there_o be_v mercy_n for_o a_o sinful_a soul_n if_o at_o any_o time_n he_o do_v true_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o full_a intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o will_n to_o reform_v his_o evil_n it_o do_v also_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o be_v secure_a or_o careless_a of_o our_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v extreme_o dangerous_a to_o loose_v any_o opportutunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o or_o to_o take_v so_o much_o liberty_n to_o sin_n as_o to_o forget_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o all_o that_o we_o have_v do_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o our_o condition_n then_o will_v be_v most_o miserable_a if_o our_o reckon_n be_v not_o make_v perfect_a in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o great_a punishment_n in_o this_o life_n to_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o our_o spiritual_a misery_n and_o not_o to_o fear_v or_o remember_v the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n also_o this_o consideration_n shall_v keep_v we_o from_o rash_a judgement_n and_o censure_v of_o any_o man_n condition_n though_o he_o be_v a_o notorious_a sinner_n for_o god_n can_v give_v he_o grace_n to_o repent_v when_o he_o please_v as_o this_o one_o example_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n may_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n from_o security_n and_o from_o rash_a judge_v of_o other_o so_o let_v it_o keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o sin_n in_o hope_n of_o pardon_n we_o do_v wilful_o delay_v our_o repentance_n from_o day_n unto_o day_n and_o so_o continue_v impenitent_a to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o our_o life_n because_o this_o man_n have_v all_o his_o sin_n forgive_v even_o in_o a_o moment_n and_o be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n at_o the_o last_o hour_n for_o god_n may_v just_o deny_v we_o mercy_n if_o we_o refuse_v grace_n when_o the_o mean_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o so_o likewise_o let_v it_o keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o repent_v when_o we_o will_n this_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v work_v in_o we_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o his_o holy_a inspiration_n or_o to_o make_v the_o right_a use_n of_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o use_v to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o it_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o work_v it_o in_o we_o we_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n ever_o to_o obtain_v it_o now_o consider_v the_o strength_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o this_o poor_a sinner_n he_o give_v the_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n to_o christ_n when_o he_o we_o be_v scornful_o mock_v and_o in_o a_o most_o contemptible_a condition_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n he_o do_v embrace_v he_o and_o vindicate_v his_o honour_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v believe_v that_o heaven_n be_v his_o kingdom_n though_o he_o be_v now_o revile_v and_o despise_v of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o all_o honour_n and_o preferment_n in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o make_v he_o pray_v unto_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n also_o his_o heart_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o sensible_a feel_n of_o his_o sin_n he_o make_v a_o pious_a confession_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v pray_v for_o mercy_n out_o of_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o misery_n if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o faith_n of_o this_o penitent_a thief_n though_o our_o life_n have_v be_v as_o vicious_a as_o he_o be_v and_o though_o we_o turn_v to_o christ_n late_o as_o he_o do_v yet_o we_o may_v have_v good_a hope_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o we_o may_v comfortable_o expect_v his_o felicity_n for_o christ_n will_v return_v the_o like_a gracious_a answer_n to_o our_o prayer_n and_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o future_a happiness_n but_o what_o faith_n can_v we_o show_v if_o we_o still_o dishonour_v christ_n with_o our_o word_n and_o work_n how_o can_v we_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o all_o regal_a power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o how_o can_v we_o hope_v for_o future_a blessedness_n from_o he_o if_o we_o be_v not_o confident_a that_o he_o be_v the_o disposer_n of_o all_o the_o glorious_a mansion_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n what_o godly_a sorrow_n have_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o still_o go_v on_o in_o a_o presumptuous_a way_n of_o sin_v and_o what_o hope_n be_v there_o of_o true_a repentance_n if_o we_o still_o cherish_v &_o foster_v our_o sin_n in_o our_o bosom_n if_o our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v no_o better_o than_o thus_o christ_n will_v not_o hear_v our_o prayer_n nor_o grant_v our_o request_n wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o devil_n delude_v thou_o with_o security_n or_o presumption_n lest_o he_o bring_v thou_o to_o perdition_n for_o many_o have_v perish_v with_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o deceitful_a hope_n look_v well_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o thy_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v well_o ground_v upon_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o those_o excellency_n that_o be_v in_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v firm_o rest_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o troublesome_a and_o dangerous_a time_n but_o chief_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o thy_o soul_n neglect_v not_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o defer_v not_o thy_o repentance_n for_o god_n hate_v such_o as_o upon_o confidence_n of_o repentance_n in_o their_o old_a age_n do_v presume_v to_o sin_v the_o mo●e_n free_o as_o if_o god_n do_v not_o know_v the_o deceit_n and_o hypocrisy_n that_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n 20_o heart_n deut._n 29._o 19_o 20_o if_o thou_o do_v flatter_v thyself_o in_o thy_o wickedness_n and_o do_v bless_v thyself_o in_o thy_o heart_n say_v i_o shall_v have_v peace_n though_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o my_o heart_n to_o add_v drankenes_n to_o thirst_n then_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v thou_o but_o then_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o jealousy_n shall_v smoke_v against_o thou_o and_o all_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v write_v in_o his_o book_n shall_v lie_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o lord_n shall_v blot_v out_o thy_o name_n from_o under_o heaven_n consider_v further_o how_o much_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n be_v humble_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o of_o his_o unworthiness_n and_o also_o how_o bountiful_a and_o good_a christ_n be_v to_o he_o for_o he_o dare_v not_o presume_v to_o beg_v any_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o some_o remembrance_n of_o he_o when_o he_o come_v into_o his_o kingdom_n but_o christ_n do_v grant_v he_o a_o present_a possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n this_o paradise_n be_v the_o place_n of_o blessedness_n where_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v until_o the_o general_a
life_n though_o the_o soul_n be_v thus_o high_o to_o be_v prize_v and_o far_o excel_v the_o body_n in_o worth_n and_o dignity_n yet_o natural_a man_n will_v pamper_v and_o garnish_v out_o the_o body_n which_o be_v every_o day_n subject_a to_o corruption_n and_o change_n but_o they_o suffer_v their_o soul_n to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a food_n and_o to_o go_v naked_a for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a clothing_n whereby_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o venomous_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o their_o sinful_a lust_n their_o soul_n have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n to_o foresee_v danger_n and_o to_o shun_v they_o they_o have_v no_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o resist_v the_o temptation_n and_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o what_o the_o eye_n or_o the_o ear_n let_v in_o be_v willing_o receive_v thus_o their_o soul_n be_v pollute_v and_o unclean_a and_o death_n do_v snatch_v they_o away_o because_o they_o can_v willing_o deliver_v they_o up_o for_o they_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v and_o no_o assurance_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o god_n will_v receive_v their_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v part_v from_o their_o body_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o nature_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n god_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o and_o then_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o devil_n 4._o devil_n psal_n 103_o 4._o but_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o destruction_n 20._o destruction_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 20._o he_o have_v buy_v we_o with_o a_o great_a price_n he_o have_v shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n wherefore_o god_n may_v just_o claim_v our_o whole_a man_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o his_o due_n by_o a_o treble_a right_n by_o the_o right_n of_o creation_n of_o donation_n and_o of_o purchase_n 28_o purchase_n act._n 17._o 28_o for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v 7_o be_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 7_o what_o have_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v from_o god_n what_o shall_v we_o bequeath_v unto_o he_o in_o thankfulness_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o we_o we_o can_v do_v no_o less_o than_o devote_v ourselves_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o service_n while_o we_o live_v here_o and_o when_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v end_v to_o bequeath_v our_o precious_a soul_n unto_o he_o purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o pure_a that_o be_v present_v to_o he_o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a and_o precious_a for_o he_o if_o we_o bequeath_v this_o precious_a legacy_n to_o god_n in_o our_o life-time_n than_o he_o will_v require_v it_o as_o of_o right_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o from_o we_o at_o our_o death_n this_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o death_n to_o we_o which_o will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o this_o will_v make_v we_o willing_a to_o leave_v this_o world_n and_o desire_v with_o paul_n to_o be_v dissolve_v because_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o christ_n but_o if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o to_o worldly_a vanity_n to_o lewd_a and_o licentious_a live_n and_o not_o to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v then_o be_v unwilling_a to_o part_v with_o this_o life_n or_o to_o look_v upon_o death_n when_o it_o come_v because_o we_o know_v not_o to_o who_o it_o will_v deliver_v our_o poor_a soul_n for_o we_o can_v comfortable_o commend_v they_o to_o god_n when_o we_o die_v with_o any_o hope_n or_o good_a assurance_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v they_o see_v they_o do_v god_n no_o service_n while_o we_o live_v what_o thankfulness_n be_v it_o then_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n when_o we_o can_v keep_v they_o no_o long_o for_o the_o world_n or_o for_o our_o sinful_a delight_n and_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v at_o our_o death_n if_o we_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o happiness_n with_o christ_n but_o rather_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o our_o life_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o everlasting_a torment_n after_o death_n it_o may_v sometime_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o shall_v neither_o have_v time_n nor_o ability_n to_o dispose_v of_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o die_v as_o we_o desire_v and_o as_o we_o ought_v for_o if_o death_n come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o by_o any_o casualty_n or_o otherwise_o we_o have_v then_o no_o time_n to_o commit_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n protection_n or_o if_o we_o be_v take_v away_o by_o some_o violent_a or_o malignant_a disease_n which_o do_v distemper_v our_o sense_n and_o weaken_v our_o understanding_n and_o reason_n that_o we_o be_v unfit_a for_o this_o great_a work_n we_o have_v then_o no_o ability_n to_o resign_v up_o our_o spirit_n unto_o god_n in_o a_o holy_a way_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o where_o be_v our_o comfort_n in_o death_n this_o need_v not_o trouble_v our_o thought_n if_o we_o have_v former_o in_o our_o life_n have_v any_o holy_a assurance_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o his_o righteousness_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o sanctification_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o we_o have_v live_v virtuous_o and_o pious_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o have_v serve_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n with_o a_o perfect_a and_o upright_a heart_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n for_o then_o death_n can_v come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o and_o no_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n or_o pain_n can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n nor_o take_v away_o our_o comfort_n from_o our_o soul_n at_o our_o death_n because_o god_n will_v receive_v they_o up_o into_o his_o holy_a habitation_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o though_o we_o have_v neither_o time_n nor_o ability_n to_o commend_v they_o unto_o he_o last_o let_v we_o zealous_o meditate_v for_o our_o great_a comfort_n upon_o the_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o gush_v out_o from_o our_o saviour_n heart_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a when_o his_o side_n be_v pierce_v with_o the_o spear_n there_o be_v blood_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o there_o be_v water_n to_o wash_v away_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o sanctification_n for_o as_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o as_o our_o surety_n so_o by_o faith_n his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_o and_o righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n so_o likewise_o by_o grace_n we_o be_v renew_v daily_o and_o sanctify_a in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v raise_v up_o our_o thought_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o this_o sanctify_a water_n when_o we_o think_v upon_o our_o baptism_n or_o see_v that_o sacrament_n celebrate_v that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v sprinkle_v with_o it_o by_o faith_n to_o purify_v our_o soul_n from_o the_o leprosy_n and_o spot_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o we_o must_v set_v the_o cogitation_n of_o our_o heart_n upon_o this_o sacred_a blood_n when_o we_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n that_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o consider_v also_o that_o though_o the_o body_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n be_v miserable_o rend_v and_o tear_v by_o the_o cruelty_n of_o his_o enemy_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 20_o david_n psal_n 34._o 20_o he_o keep_v all_o his_o bone_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v break_v and_o though_o they_o break_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o two_o malefactor_n that_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o yet_o they_o break_v not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 12._o fulfil_v num._n 9_o 12._o that_o not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v god_n so_o restrain_v his_o bloody_a enemy_n that_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v and_o what_o christ_n be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v for_o he_o do_v not_o yield_v to_o their_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n but_o only_o in_o obedience_n to_o his_o father_n will_n for_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o confound_v all_o his_o tormentor_n but_o how_o then_o shall_v our_o redemption_n be_v wrought_v how_o shall_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v and_o how_o
shall_v he_o have_v learn_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n what_o we_o suffer_v when_o we_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n that_o he_o may_v pity_v we_o this_o may_v teach_v we_o to_o bear_v patient_o whatsoever_o god_n do_v lay_v upon_o we_o though_o the_o instrument_n that_o he_o use_v be_v our_o deadly_a foe_n because_o it_o be_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o have_v it_o so_o 1●_n so_o 2_o sam._n 16._o 1●_n thus_o do_v david_n meek_o bear_v the_o curse_v of_o shim●i_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v abishai_n to_o kill_v he_o because_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o this_o meditation_n will_v great_o comfort_v our_o faint_a spirit_n when_o we_o be_v under_o any_o strong_a temptation_n or_o worldly_a misery_n that_o no_o enemy_n be_v he_o never_o so_o powerful_a or_o his_o heart_n never_o so_o malicious_a can_v imagine_v more_o against_o we_o in_o his_o wicked_a thought_n or_o act_v more_o with_o his_o cruel_a hand_n than_o divine_a providence_n have_v appoint_v also_o no_o calamity_n pain_n or_o sickness_n can_v afflict_v we_o without_o his_o will_n no_o peril_n or_o danger_n can_v come_v near_o we_o without_o his_o permission_n and_o we_o shall_v suffer_v no_o more_o under_o any_o cross_n than_o god_n in_o his_o wisdom_n know_v to_o to_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o persuade_v it_o will_v great_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o suffering_n and_o keep_v we_o from_o murmur_v and_o repine_v when_o god_n visitation_n be_v upon_o we_o wherefore_o let_v no_o fear_n of_o danger_n cast_v down_o our_o hope_n let_v no_o storm_n of_o persecution_n shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o let_v no_o wave_n of_o affliction_n quench_v the_o flame_n of_o our_o love_n or_o abate_v the_o zeal_n of_o our_o affection_n to_o our_o dear_a saviour_n who_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o life_n for_o we_o but_o pour_v out_o his_o very_a heart_n blood_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n if_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o be_v not_o answerable_a to_o what_o we_o suffer_v or_o to_o the_o power_n of_o our_o corruption_n christ_n will_v either_o take_v off_o some_o part_n of_o our_o burden_n or_o give_v we_o more_o strength_n to_o bear_v it_o and_o he_o will_v also_o make_v we_o able_a by_o degree_n to_o overcome_v our_o corruption_n that_o we_o may_v live_v a_o sanctify_a life_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o let_v death_n come_v how_o or_o when_o it_o will_v we_o shall_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n which_o will_v be_v great_a gain_n and_o advantage_n to_o we_o now_o let_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v fix_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o thy_o precious_a saviour_n that_o from_o thence_o thou_o may_v draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n by_o faith_n to_o mortify_v and_o kill_v the_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o by_o nature_n be_v in_o thou_o &_o also_o to_o have_v a_o firm_a assurance_n that_o he_o have_v reconcile_v thou_o to_o god_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n why_o then_o do_v thou_o cherish_v any_o sin_n to_o crucify_v thy_o redeemer_n afresh_o what_o be_v this_o that_o thou_o do_v when_o thou_o delight_v in_o swear_v in_o uncleanness_n in_o drunkenness_n and_o the_o like_a why_o do_v thou_o delay_v thy_o turn_n unto_o god_n why_o do_v thou_o thus_o endanger_v the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n oh_o think_v upon_o the_o iniquity_n of_o thy_o sin_n with_o hatred_n and_o detestation_n which_o have_v put_v to_o death_n thy_o gracious_a redeemer_n think_v upon_o thy_o sin_n with_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o true_a compunction_n of_o heart_n which_o do_v so_o separate_v thou_o from_o thy_o god_n that_o nothing_o can_v restore_v thou_o into_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n but_o the_o death_n of_o his_o eternal_a son_n wherefore_o seek_v earnest_o by_o faithful_a prayer_n to_o thy_o sweet_a saviour_n that_o thou_o may_v find_v the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o death_n in_o the_o crucify_a of_o all_o the_o several_a member_n of_o this_o body_n of_o sin_n that_o by_o nature_n be_v inherent_a in_o thou_o that_o so_o thy_o corruption_n may_v be_v weaken_v and_o thou_o may_v be_v daily_o renew_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o that_o sanctify_a grace_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v wrought_v in_o thou_o consider_v now_o in_o the_o last_o place_n how_o rigorous_o god_n do_v deal_v with_o his_o only_a son_n throughout_o his_o whole_a passion_n he_o give_v he_o no_o intermission_n in_o his_o suffering_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o one_o sorrow_n be_v past_a another_o present_o come_v in_o the_o place_n when_o one_o pain_n be_v over_o a_o great_a be_v ready_a to_o supply_v the_o room_n 4._o room_n psal_n 102._o 4._o his_o heart_n be_v smite_v and_o wither_v like_o grass_n so_o that_o he_o forget_v to_o eat_v his_o bread_n his_o torturing_n come_v so_o fast_o upon_o he_o that_o he_o have_v no_o time_n to_o refresh_v himself_o with_o bread_n or_o water_n but_o above_o all_o god_n fury_n be_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o his_o suffering_n which_o make_v his_o passion_n beyond_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n god_n never_o deal_v thus_o with_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n but_o still_o they_o have_v some_o intermission_n in_o their_o affliction_n some_o comfort_n in_o their_o sorrow_n and_o some_o heavenly_a consolation_n to_o uphold_v their_o spirit_n or_o else_o a_o joyful_a deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o joseph_n have_v his_o affliction_n and_o yet_o at_o length_n god_n advance_v he_o to_o great_a honour_n job_n affliction_n come_v upon_o he_o as_o fast_o as_o one_o messenger_n can_v follow_v another_o at_o last_o misery_n seize_v upon_o his_o own_o body_n but_o in_o the_o end_n god_n give_v he_o double_a as_o much_o as_o he_o take_v from_o he_o so_o likewise_o david_n and_o many_o more_o have_v suffer_v very_o great_a affliction_n and_o torment_n but_o none_o like_o unto_o christ_n who_o passion_n continue_v to_o his_o heath_n 11._o heath_n 2_o cor._n 11._o paul_n be_v above_o measure_n afflict_v persecute_v and_o torment_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o at_o last_o he_o die_v by_o the_o sword_n but_o all_o this_o while_n he_o have_v christ_n to_o support_v he_o with_o many_o spiritual_a consolation_n wherefore_o howsoever_o god_n be_v please_v to_o deal_v with_o we_o in_o this_o life_n it_o will_v be_v in_o mercy_n and_o in_o judgement_n for_o our_o good_a and_o not_o in_o fury_n or_o in_o the_o rigour_n of_o his_o justice_n for_o our_o confusion_n and_o he_o will_v bountiful_o reward_v we_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v if_o we_o hold_v out_o constant_a to_o the_o end_n what_o happen_v at_o christ_n death_n when_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n be_v dissolve_v and_o separate_v from_o his_o breathless_a body_n 51._o body_n mat._n 27._o 51._o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v rend_v in_o twain_o from_o the_o top_n to_o the_o bottom_n the_o earth_n do_v quake_v the_o rock_n rend_v the_o grave_n be_v open_v and_o many_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o sleep_v arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n after_o his_o resurrection_n god_n do_v show_v these_o strange_a sign_n and_o wonder_n at_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n as_o forerunner_n of_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n that_o soon_o after_o shall_v come_v upon_o that_o renown_a city_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o strike_v terror_n into_o their_o heart_n for_o their_o odious_a and_o detestable_a sin_n in_o crucify_a the_o lord_n of_o glory_n if_o by_o any_o mean_n they_o can_v be_v make_v sensible_a of_o their_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n that_o so_o god_n may_v turn_v away_o his_o judgement_n and_o have_v mercy_n on_o they_o this_o have_v be_v god_n usual_a course_n to_o give_v warning_n before_o he_o strike_v to_o threaten_v before_o the_o judgement_n come_v and_o nothing_o but_o repentance_n can_v stay_v god_n hand_n 29._o hand_n 1_o kin._n 21._o 29._o ahabs_n outward_a form_n of_o humiliation_n keep_v off_o the_o judgement_n from_o himself_o that_o god_n have_v denounce_v against_o his_o house_n by_o his_o prophet_n the_o ninivites_n repent_v at_o the_o preach_a of_o jovah_n and_o therefore_o god_n bring_v not_o the_o evil_a upon_o they_o which_o he_o threaten_v against_o that_o great_a city_n but_o the_o house_n of_o juda_n will_v not_o repent_v though_o god_n send_v his_o prophet_n to_o they_o early_o and_o late_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_n into_o babylon_n thus_o do_v god_n in_o great_a mercy_n give_v warning_n before_o he_o do_v visit_v a_o nation_n or_o a_o people_n in_o his_o wrath_n that_o they_o shall_v prevent_v the_o judgement_n by_o their_o repentance_n first_o god_n do_v show_v by_o the_o rent_v of_o the_o vail_n of_o the_o temple_n that_o the_o partition_n wall_n be_v
christ_n shall_v be_v receive_v up_o to_o eternal_a glory_n the_o saint_n that_o then_o arise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n be_v forerunner_n of_o this_o general_a resurrection_n this_o be_v a_o dreadful_a sign_n to_o the_o cruel_a jew_n who_o have_v embrue_v their_o hand_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o same_o jesus_n who_o they_o crucify_v shall_v be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n at_o that_o day_n before_o who_o they_o must_v appear_v to_o answer_v for_o this_o their_o bloody_a fact_n it_o may_v also_o be_v a_o terrible_a warning_n to_o all_o wicked_a man_n that_o be_v defile_v with_o innocent_a blood_n and_o that_o live_v in_o profaneness_n and_o sensuality_n fulfil_v their_o sinful_a lust_n without_o any_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v reclaim_v from_o their_o wicked_a way_n and_o without_o any_o care_n to_o make_v their_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o true_a repentance_n for_o a_o time_n will_v come_v when_o they_o must_v answer_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o all_o their_o cry_a sin_n and_o heinous_a abomination_n wherefore_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n with_o thyself_o how_o thou_o be_v prepare_v and_o fit_v for_o thy_o grave_n if_o thou_o have_v live_v to_o the_o world_n to_o the_o flesh_n to_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o thyself_o thou_o be_v in_o a_o sad_a and_o lamentable_a condition_n for_o the_o grave_n can_v keep_v thou_o from_o judgement_n but_o must_v open_v her_o mouth_n 10_o mouth_n jona_n 2_o 10_o like_o jonahs_n whale_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n and_o it_o will_v deliver_v thou_o up_o even_o as_o it_o sound_v thou_o if_o thy_o grave_n receive_v thou_o a_o hypocrite_n a_o blasphemer_n a_o swearer_n a_o unclean_a person_n or_o the_o like_a it_o will_v deliver_v thou_o up_o to_o judgement_n all_o pollute_a with_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o the_o same_o sin_n 11_o sin_n job_n 20._o 11_o if_o thy_o bone_n be_v full_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o thy_o youth_n they_o will_v lie_v down_o with_o thou_o in_o the_o dust_n and_o they_o will_v cleave_v fast_o to_o thou_o when_o thou_o shall_v rise_v again_o how_o can_v thou_o then_o stand_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o before_o all_o his_o glorious_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint_n if_o thou_o be_v in_o this_o sinful_a condition_n and_o how_o can_v thou_o endure_v the_o rigour_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o judgement_n if_o this_o consideration_n be_v well_o imprint_v in_o thy_o heart_n it_o will_v make_v thou_o afraid_a to_o go_v on_o in_o a_o way_n of_o sin_n without_o repentance_n but_o such_o as_o have_v live_v to_o the_o lord_n shall_v die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v sleep_v quiet_o in_o their_o grave_n as_o in_o their_o bed_n 17._o bed_n mal._n 3._o 17._o for_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n jewel_n and_o he_o keep_v they_o in_o these_o cabinet_n until_o the_o day_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v up_o his_o jewel_n wherefore_o if_o we_o have_v any_o interest_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n his_o blood_n will_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n his_o righteousness_n will_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v account_v we_o as_o his_o jewel_n and_o then_o christ_n will_v sanctify_v the_o grave_n to_o we_o ●_o we_o isa_n 57_o ●_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o peace_n we_o shall_v rest_v in_o our_o bed_n walk_v in_o his_o righteousness_n thus_o comfortable_o shall_v we_o enter_v into_o the_o grave_n if_o we_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o the_o witness_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o our_o resurrection_n will_v be_v with_o unspeakable_a joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o we_o of_o the_o burial_n of_o christ_n though_o christ_n die_v a_o most_o shameful_a and_o ignominious_a death_n yet_o he_o have_v honourable_a burial_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n 41._o jew_n john_n 19_o 40_o 41._o for_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n and_o nicodemus_n two_o honourable_a man_n among_o the_o jew_n beg_v leave_v of_o pilate_n and_o take_v down_o his_o body_n from_o the_o cross_n and_o wrap_v it_o in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o spice_n and_o lay_v it_o in_o a_o new_a sepulchre_n which_o be_v hew_v out_o in_o a_o rock_n wherein_o be_v never_o man_n yet_o lay_v and_o they_o roll_v a_o great_a stone_n to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n think_v he_o not_o safe_a enough_o and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v his_o resurrection_n as_o they_o think_v 65._o think_v mat._n 27._o 64_o 65._o they_o get_v leave_v of_o pilate_n to_o make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a then_o they_o seal_v the_o stone_n and_o set_v a_o watch_n about_o the_o sepulchre_n yet_o notwithstanding_o at_o god_n appoint_v time_n he_o do_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n which_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o his_o humane_a nature_n though_o he_o be_v now_o dead_a 10._o dead_a psal_n 16._o 10._o for_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n 44._o corruption_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 44._o and_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v raise_v up_o a_o spiritual_a and_o glorify_a body_n but_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o draw_v from_o christ_n now_o he_o be_v dead_a can_v we_o have_v any_o benefit_n by_o he_o as_o he_o be_v now_o bury_v it_o be_v true_a which_o christ_n say_v 63_o say_v john_n 6._o 63_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o though_o we_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o grave_n yet_o by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n which_o ever_o live_v we_o may_v receive_v great_a benefit_n and_o much_o spiritual_a consolation_n by_o the_o death_n &_o burial_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n for_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v draw_v virtue_n and_o power_n from_o thence_o to_o kill_v that_o body_n of_o sin_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v in_o we_o and_o to_o bury_v it_o with_o christ_n that_o the_o new_a man_n of_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n may_v be_v quicken_v and_o raise_v up_o in_o we_o for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o mort●fie_v and_o kill_v this_o body_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v also_o bury_v it_o and_o every_o member_n of_o it_o with_o christ_n that_o no_o sin_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o profitable_a or_o please_a to_o our_o nature_n may_v gather_v strength_n to_o overpower_v we_o or_o to_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o subjection_n that_o ●very_n base_a lust_n shall_v reign_v over_o we_o to_o make_v we_o slave_n unto_o sin_n it_o be_v true_a that_o sin_n will_v still_o dwell_v in_o we_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n will_v make_v we_o able_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n so_o to_o kill_v the_o power_n of_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o grace_n work_v our_o sanctification_n by_o degree_n and_o we_o can_v expect_v perfection_n of_o holiness_n until_o we_o come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o if_o we_o will_v bury_v our_o sin_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n we_o must_v not_o only_o forbear_v the_o actual_a commit_n of_o sin_n but_o we_o must_v quite_o loose_v the_o delightful_a remembrance_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o do_v still_o retain_v with_o approbation_n a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o our_o former_a sin_n we_o do_v then_o keep_v they_o above_o ground_n and_o unbury_v and_o they_o will_v be_v odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n though_o the_o act_n of_o sin_n be_v mortify_v in_o we_o 5._o we_o rom._n 6._o 3_o 4_o 5._o if_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n into_o death_n that_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v destroy_v that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v not_o serve_v sin_n but_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o bury_v with_o christ_n than_o the_o sweet_a perfume_n and_o precious_a odour_n of_o his_o merit_n will_v take_v away_o the_o stench_n and_o noisomeness_n of_o our_o sin_n from_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n wherefore_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v draw_v a_o new_a principle_n of_o grace_n from_o christ_n to_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o he_o to_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o both_o in_o the_o act_n and_o in_o the_o delight_n of_o sin_n 1._o sin_n col._n 3._o 1._o and_o to_o rise_v again_o with_o he_o in_o a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v continual_o with_o he_o to_o have_v our_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o he_o for_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n will_v be_v where_o he_o be_v in_o
in_o our_o affection_n why_o be_v our_o prayer_n our_o praise_n and_o our_o thanksgiving_n so_o few_o and_o so_o seldom_o send_v up_o to_o he_o why_o be_v they_o so_o cold_a and_o so_o dull_a that_o they_o can_v mount_v up_o to_o he_o and_o why_o be_v our_o spiritual_a oblation_n so_o full_a of_o unbelief_n do_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v intercede_v for_o we_o if_o we_o sin_v witting_o and_o willing_o against_o god_n will_v he_o procure_v our_o pardon_n if_o there_o be_v any_o accurse_a thing_n hide_v in_o our_o heart_n will_v christ_n present_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n if_o they_o proceed_v out_o of_o feign_a lip_n and_o will_v he_o present_v our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n if_o they_o be_v perform_v with_o unbelieving_a and_o deceitful_a heart_n if_o we_o thus_o conceive_v of_o the_o intercession_n of_o christ_n we_o delude_v ourselves_o and_o endanger_v our_o soul_n to_o utter_v perdition_n if_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v take_v possession_n of_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o we_o our_o soul_n will_v be_v ravish_v with_o a_o holy_a desire_n to_o enjoy_v it_o we_o will_v contemn_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o and_o our_o affection_n will_v not_o be_v carry_v after_o sinful_a pleasure_n affliction_n and_o cross_n will_v not_o cast_v down_o and_o deject_v our_o spirit_n but_o we_o will_v live_v cheerful_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n because_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o that_o place_n be_v so_o perfect_o pure_a that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n can_v enter_v there_o we_o shall_v study_v to_o live_v pious_o and_o virtuous_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n while_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o sure_a hope_n to_o enjoy_v it_o hereafter_o if_o a_o king_n son_n that_o be_v heir_n apparent_a but_o to_o a_o earthly_a crown_n shall_v live_v like_o a_o base_a peasant_n and_o delight_n in_o the_o company_n of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o mean_a and_o low_a degree_n we_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v unworthy_a of_o such_o a_o inheritance_n let_v we_o make_v this_o our_o own_o case_n and_o consider_v to_o what_o honour_n and_o dignity_n we_o be_v bear_v by_o our_o adoption_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v not_o live_v in_o subjection_n to_o every_o base_a and_o sinful_a lust_n as_o unworthy_a of_o that_o inheritance_n which_o christ_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n though_o our_o condition_n ●e_v mean_v in_o this_o world_n and_o our_o calling_n such_o as_o that_o we_o must_v converse_v with_o ungodly_a people_n as_o to_o the_o outward_a man_n yet_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n may_v be_v spiritual_a and_o holy_a 15_o holy_a joh._n 17._o 15_o for_o christ_n have_v pray_v his_o father_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v imitate_v here_o upon_o earth_n the_o bless_a angel_n and_o saint_n in_o heaven_n by_o glorify_v god_n and_o by_o our_o readiness_n to_o fulfil_v his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o apostle_n col._n 3._o 1_o 2_o if_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n we_o shall_v seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o there_o shall_v our_o affection_n be_v set_v and_o not_o on_o thing_n on_o the_o earth_n thus_o we_o may_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n thus_o we_o may_v live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n upon_o earth_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a communion_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n even_o in_o this_o life_n for_o god_n the_o father_n will_v be_v gracious_a and_o love_a to_o we_o in_o christ_n as_o a_o father_n be_v to_o his_o child_n god_n the_o son_n will_v be_v righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n to_o we_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o saviour_n to_o his_o elect_a people_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o true_a comforter_n a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o look_v now_o upon_o our_o belove_a saviour_n we_o may_v contemplate_v his_o great_a exaltation_n with_o much_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n 8._o heart_n eph._n 4._o 8._o for_o he_o be_v ascend_v up_o on_o high_a and_o have_v lead_v captivity_n captive_a 16._o captive_a rev._n 19_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o john_n do_v describe_v he_o sit_v upon_o a_o white_a horse_n because_o he_o do_v judge_n in_o righteousness_n his_o eye_n be_v as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o on_o his_o head_n be_v many_o crown_n he_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o vestare_fw-la dip_v in_o blood_n and_o his_o name_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o army_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n follow_v he_o upon_o white_a horse_n and_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n go_v a_o sharp_a sword_n that_o with_o it_o he_o shall_v smite_v the_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o he_o tread_v the_o wine-press_n of_o the_o fierceness_n and_o wrath_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o he_o have_v on_o his_o vesture_n and_o on_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n 16._o lord_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 15_o 16._o he_o be_v the_o bless_a and_o only_a potentate_n who_o only_o have_v immortality_n dwell_v in_o the_o light_n which_o no_o man_n can_v approach_v unto_o who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v or_o can_v see_v 10._o see_v phil._n 2._o 9_o 10._o god_n have_v high_o exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o every_o name_n that_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n 5._o earth_n rom._n 9_o 5._o for_o he_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o 8_o ever_o psal_n 2._o 6_o 8_o god_n have_v now_o make_v christ_n a_o king_n and_o set_v he_o upon_o his_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n he_o have_v give_v he_o the_o heathen_a for_o his_o inheriritance_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o possession_n also_o the_o apostle_n say_v 10._o say_v col._n 2._o 9_o 10._o in_o christ_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a and_o we_o be_v complete_a in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n we_o may_v yet_o consider_v further_o how_o god_n have_v exalt_v christ_n 23._o christ_n eph._n 5._o 23._o for_o he_o have_v make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n 22._o church_n eph._n 1._o 22._o and_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n and_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n also_o 12._o also_o psal_n 118._o 12._o christ_n be_v become_v the_o head_n stone_n of_o the_o corner_n in_o this_o spiritual_a building_n and_o he_o do_v so_o firm_o bind_v every_o stone_n of_o this_o build_n to_o himself_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o depart_v from_o he_o thus_o god_n be_v please_v to_o reveal_v in_o some_o measure_n how_o high_o he_o have_v exalt_v our_o dear_a saviour_n after_o his_o great_a suffering_n in_o his_o bitter_a passion_n but_o as_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o conceive_v what_o he_o suffer_v so_o our_o weak_a capacity_n can_v reach_v to_o that_o transcendent_a glory_n and_o majesty_n which_o he_o now_o have_v in_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v our_o redeemer_n god_n and_o man._n if_o god_n have_v so_o high_o exalt_v our_o glorify_a redeeemer_n than_o we_o must_v study_v and_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n and_o pious_a devotion_n how_o to_o exalt_v he_o in_o our_o heart_n how_o to_o prize_v he_o in_o our_o affection_n according_a to_o his_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n how_o to_o have_v a_o reverend_a esteem_n of_o his_o worth_n how_o to_o honour_v and_o reverence_v he_o for_o his_o greatness_n and_o 5._o and_o hos_fw-la 3._o 5._o how_o to_o fear_v and_o love_v he_o for_o his_o goodness_n also_o we_o must_v have_v a_o diligent_a care_n to_o obey_v his_o rule_n and_o government_n as_o he_o reign_v and_o rule_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v withstand_v and_o resist_v the_o temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o the_o allure_a vanity_n of_o the_o world_n may_v not_o ensnare_v we_o and_o that_o no_o evil_a concupiscence_n may_v overpower_v we_o to_o make_v we_o dishonour_v our_o god_n or_o disobey_v the_o will_n of_o our_o dear_a saviour_n if_o christ_n be_v true_o advance_v in_o our_o mind_n and_o thought_n according_a to_o the_o glory_n
the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n may_v season_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o holiness_n and_o pureness_n of_o live_v all_o our_o day_n wherefore_o now_o our_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n which_o be_v part_n of_o this_o curse_n be_v sanctify_v to_o we_o and_o make_v salubrious_a and_o wholesome_a for_o our_o good_a and_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n which_o we_o suffer_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o be_v change_v into_o fatherly_a chastisement_n to_o correct_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v walk_v more_o obedient_o before_o god_n or_o else_o they_o be_v to_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o grace_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n that_o give_v they_o four_o this_o be_v another_o great_a advantage_n and_o gain_n that_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n which_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v find_v that_o he_o have_v also_o free_v we_o from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n for_o though_o sin_n will_v dwell_v with_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n be_v weaken_v and_o kill_v by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o by_o his_o death_n the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n do_v often_o complain_v how_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n in_o they_o do_v sometime_o prevail_v against_o the_o spirit_n which_o make_v they_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o corruption_n as_o holy_a david_n and_o other_o have_v do_v paul_n also_o find_v this_o to_o be_v true_a for_o thus_o he_o say_v 19_o say_v rom._n 7._o 18_o 19_o i_o know_v that_o in_o i_o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n for_o to_o will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o but_o how_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a i_o find_v not_o for_o the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v and_o he_o have_v no_o power_n but_o only_o from_o christ_n to_o be_v free_v from_o this_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o cry_v out_o say_v 25._o say_v rom_n 7._o 24_o 25._o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n i_o thank_v god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n for_o he_o find_v this_o benefit_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n for_o say_v he_o 21._o he_o phil._n 1._o 21._o to_o i_o to_o live_v be_v christ_n and_o to_o die_v be_v gain_v or_o else_o we_o may_v read_v it_o thus_o for_o christ_n be_v to_o i_o both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n advantage_n this_o be_v not_o the_o gain_n which_o natural_a man_n look_v for_o they_o seek_v after_o the_o gain_n of_o riches_n the_o gain_n of_o honour_n and_o the_o gain_n of_o worldly_a preferment_n they_o look_v not_o after_o spiritual_a gain_n they_o do_v not_o esteem_v of_o virtue_n and_o godliness_n piety_n towards_o god_n be_v out_o of_o request_n with_o they_o though_o it_o be_v the_o true_a gain_n and_o most_o to_o be_v desire_v five_o that_o we_o may_v get_v this_o spiritual_a gain_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o advantage_n only_o of_o a_o true_a believer_n christ_n do_v wash_v we_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o therefore_o he_o bestow_v all_o sanctify_a and_o save_v grace_n upon_o we_o to_o purify_v we_o from_o the_o silth_n and_o pollution_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o christ_n do_v unite_v we_o unto_o himself_o by_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o his_o righteousness_n and_o have_v all_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n then_o faith_n draw_v in_o with_o it_o all_o other_o sanctify_a grace_n to_o make_v we_o complete_a and_o perfect_a in_o christ_n to_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v our_o soul_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o virtuous_a and_o pious_a life_n in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o true_a holiness_n 2_o holiness_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 2_o christ_n do_v also_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a desire_n to_o the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o 18._o in_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 18._o grace_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n 24_o god_n rom._n 3._o 24_o by_o who_o grace_n &_o love_n we_o be_v free_o justify_v through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n 8._o christ_n eph._n 2._o 8._o by_o who_o free_a grace_n also_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n in_o christ_n save_v grace_n be_v one_o of_o the_o special_a gift_n that_o christ_n give_v after_o his_o ascension_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 7._o paul_n eph._n 4._o 7._o but_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n 9_o christ_n heb._n 13_o 9_o wherefore_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v establish_v with_o the_o grace_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n but_o we_o shall_v stand_v firm_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v purge_v from_o dead_a work_n six_o we_o have_v this_o great_a advantage_n by_o christ_n above_o all_o other_o man_n 7._o man_n gal._n 4._o 5_o 6_o 7._o that_o by_o he_o we_o receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o thereby_o we_o enjoy_v all_o the_o privilege_n that_o belong_v to_o son_n for_o god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n and_o we_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n wherefore_o 16._o wherefore_o heb._n 4._o 16._o in_o he_o we_o may_v come_v bold_o unto_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n by_o prayer_n that_o we_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n for_o god_n will_v have_v a_o fatherly_a care_n of_o we_o to_o protect_v we_o in_o all_o danger_n to_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o distress_n 4._o distress_n psal_n 9_o 9_o isa_n 25._o 4._o thus_o be_v god_n a_o refuge_n and_o a_o shield_n of_o defence_n to_o david_n and_o to_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o their_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n if_o his_o rod_n of_o correction_n be_v upon_o we_o it_o will_v be_v in_o love_n 6._o love_n heb._n 12._o 6._o as_o a_o father_n chasten_v his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v we_o as_o his_o son_n and_o though_o we_o feel_v his_o visitation_n sharp_a 31_o sharp_a lam._n 3._o 31_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o cast_v we_o off_o for_o ever_o for_o 30._o for_o eph._n 4_o 30._o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n 12._o redemption_n heb._n 6._o 12._o that_o we_o may_v through_o faith_n and_o patience_n inherit_v the_o promise_n 4._o promise_n 1_o pet._n 1_o 4._o as_o heir_n to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o last_o christ_n have_v seal_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n whereby_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o strict_a keep_n of_o the_o legal_a covenant_n of_o work_n and_o christ_n will_v perfect_v with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n whatsoever_o be_v want_v in_o we_o to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n if_o we_o endeavour_v the_o best_a we_o can_v with_o a_o upright_a heart_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o than_o god_n in_o mercy_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o imperfect_a obedience_n for_o his_o sake_n this_o new_a covenant_n which_o christ_n have_v procure_v for_o we_o will_v admit_v of_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o and_o also_o of_o our_o true_a repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n which_o the_o legal_a covenant_n will_v not_o because_o it_o require_v perfect_a and_o personal_a obedience_n to_o every_o tittle_n of_o the_o law_n both_o in_o thought_n in_o word_n and_o in_o deed_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o new_a covenant_n 34._o covenant_n jer._n 31._o 33_o 34._o god_n be_v our_o god_n and_o he_o will_v forgive_v all_o our_o iniquity_n and_o will_v remember_v our_o sin_n no_o more_o upon_o condition_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n 24._o christ_n heb._n 12._o 24._o who_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o this_o covenant_n and_o that_o with_o our_o faith_n we_o join_v piety_n and_o new_a obedience_n christ_n have_v also_o give_v we_o his_o sacrament_n whereby_o this_o covenant_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o if_o we_o do_v worthy_o partake_v of_o they_o but_o of_o this_o covenant_n and_o also_o of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o have_v write_v more_o full_o in_o another_o treatise_n now_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a devotion_n upon_o all_o these_o advantage_n which_o every_o
please_v to_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n for_o our_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o as_o certain_a assurance_n to_o obtain_v what_o we_o pray_v for_o as_o if_o we_o do_v already_o enjoy_v it_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o succour_n in_o our_o distress_n but_o by_o prayer_n and_o no_o prayer_n be_v prevail_v with_o god_n but_o that_o which_o come_v from_o a_o believe_a heart_n the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n may_v move_v the_o affection_n for_o the_o present_a but_o it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n that_o be_v powerful_a with_o god_n the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n be_v but_o a_o common_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o may_v be_v without_o faith_n and_o consequent_o without_o any_o acceptance_n 6._o acceptance_n heb._n 11._o 6._o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n but_o faith_n do_v always_o go_v along_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n and_o god_n will_v not_o deny_v such_o a_o prayer_n though_o it_o be_v make_v in_o weak_a expression_n for_o the_o heart_n may_v sigh_v out_o a_o faithful_a prayer_n and_o groan_v out_o our_o desire_n which_o the_o tongue_n can_v utter_v nor_o express_v now_o then_o look_v well_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o thy_o affection_n and_o to_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o thy_o heart_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o word_n that_o thy_o mind_n be_v not_o then_o about_o thy_o worldly_a affair_n or_o thy_o thought_n set_v upon_o vain_a thing_n if_o thou_o desire_v to_o receive_v good_a thereby_o for_o if_o thou_o do_v hear_v it_o with_o a_o unbelieve_a heart_n or_o full_a of_o worldly_a care_n than_o thy_o heart_n be_v like_o barren_a ground_n where_o briar_n and_o thorn_n grow_v which_o can_v receive_v such_o spiritual_a seed_n to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o salvation_n also_o in_o thy_o holy_a meditation_n on_o spiritual_a thing_n thy_o heart_n must_v be_v first_o purify_v by_o faith_n or_o else_o thy_o meditation_n will_v not_o be_v comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n because_o thou_o have_v not_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o instrument_n to_o draw_v true_a consolation_n from_o christ_n so_o likewise_o when_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n see_v there_o be_v faith_n in_o thy_o eye_n to_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n in_o those_o outward_a element_n that_o thou_o may_v spiritual_o feed_v on_o he_o to_o nourish_v thy_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n when_o thou_o make_v thy_o supplication_n to_o god_n believe_v faithful_o that_o thou_o shall_v receive_v what_o thou_o beg_v and_o then_o thy_o prayer_n will_v not_o return_v empty_a without_o a_o blessing_n in_o like_a manner_n if_o thy_o humiliation_n for_o thy_o sin_n be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o thy_o heart_n with_o true_a contrition_n and_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o thy_o humiliation_n be_v no_o better_a 27._o better_a 1_o kin._n 21._o 27._o than_o that_o of_o ahab_n which_o produce_v no_o reformation_n of_o life_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v confess_v thy_o sin_n when_o any_o sore_a affliction_n be_v upon_o thou_o and_o do_v not_o faithful_o purpose_n to_o forsake_v they_o and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n thou_o do_v dissemble_v with_o god_n in_o thy_o heart_n and_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v forgive_v they_o for_o thy_o confession_n be_v no_o better_a 28._o better_a exod._n 9_o 27_o 28._o than_o that_o of_o pharaoh_n and_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o such_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v only_a faith_n that_o do_v perfect_a all_o thy_o service_n to_o god_n in_o their_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n four_o we_o have_v no_o defence_n against_o the_o temptation_n and_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o against_o the_o rage_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n but_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n his_o fiery_a dart_n will_v wound_v our_o soul_n even_o to_o the_o death_n 16._o death_n eph._n 6._o 16._o if_o we_o do_v not_o quench_v they_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n his_o temptation_n will_v pierce_v we_o to_o the_o heart_n if_o we_o do_v not_o beat_v they_o back_o with_o this_o impenetrable_a shield_n also_o he_o lay_v his_o snare_n every_o where_o so_o cunning_o in_o our_o way_n that_o we_o can_v hardly_o take_v a_o step_n but_o we_o shall_v step_v into_o a_o snare_n 12._o snare_n psal_n 26._o 11_o 12._o if_o we_o do_v not_o walk_v in_o our_o integriy_n by_o faith_n that_o our_o foot_n may_v stand_v in_o a_o even_a place_n there_o be_v no_o place_n secure_v and_o no_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v free_a from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o lay_v they_o in_o our_o call_n upon_o our_o table_n in_o our_o chamber_n and_o closert_n and_o under_o our_o foot_n so_o that_o every_o step_n we_o take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n be_v a_o occasion_n to_o bring_v we_o into_o his_o snare_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o escape_v they_o but_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o walk_v thus_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o spirit_n then_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 26._o say_v prov._n 28._o 18_o 26._o we_o walk_v upright_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v we_o walk_v wise_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v deliver_v but_o if_o we_o have_v not_o this_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v we_o we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n 10._o darkness_n job_n 18._o 8_o 9_o 10._o we_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o net_n by_o our_o own_o foot_n and_o we_o walk_v upon_o a_o snare_n the_o grin_n shall_v take_v we_o by_o the_o heel_n and_o the_o robber_n shall_v prevail_v against_o we_o the_o snare_n be_v lay_v for_o we_o in_o the_o ground_n and_o a_o trap_n for_o we_o in_o the_o way_n now_o then_o 11._o then_o isa_n 50._o 11._o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o our_o own_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o spark_n that_o we_o have_v kindle_v this_o we_o shall_v have_v of_o god_n hand_n we_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n thus_o do_v spiritual_a danger_n continual_o attend_v we_o which_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v escape_v but_o if_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o rest_v ourselves_o upon_o god_n by_o faith_n 3_o faith_n psal_n 91._o 3_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o fowler_n he_o will_v direct_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n and_o will_v guide_v our_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n 23_o peace_n jer_n 10._o 23_o for_o the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v not_o in_o himself_o as_o say_v the_o prophet_n it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n that_o walk_v to_o direct_v his_o step_n if_o we_o be_v take_v in_o any_o of_o these_o snare_n that_o the_o devil_n lay_v for_o we_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n of_o recovery_n but_o by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n for_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v break_v the_o snare_n and_o repentance_n will_v draw_v we_o out_o of_o the_o pit_n which_o do_v threaten_v our_o destruction_n consider_v again_o that_o the_o devil_n labour_v to_o ensnare_v we_o with_o the_o allure_a bait_n of_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n thereby_o to_o draw_v away_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o god_n this_o be_v a_o cunning_a way_n to_o deceive_v we_o for_o we_o suspect_v no_o danger_n and_o no_o evil_a in_o those_o thing_n unto_o which_o we_o be_v natural_o incline_v so_o that_o we_o may_v easy_o be_v deceive_v with_o these_o guild_a bait_n for_o without_o a_o spiritual_a light_n we_o can_v see_v the_o hook_n that_o be_v in_o they_o which_o will_v pull_v we_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o perdition_n 14._o perdition_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 14._o thus_o the_o devil_n can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n 24._o light_n mat._n 24._o 24._o to_o deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect_a the_o devil_n have_v so_o many_o way_n to_o entrap_v we_o that_o we_o can_v pass_v through_o this_o dangerous_a ocean_n without_o shipwreck_n except_o christ_n be_v our_o pilot_n by_o faith_n to_o steer_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n with_o his_o spirit_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v escape_v all_o these_o rock_n and_o quicksand_n which_o do_v continual_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o our_o poor_a soul_n we_o can_v mount_v above_o this_o black_a cloud_n of_o deadly_a snare_n and_o danger_n without_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o can_v break_v the_o cord_n of_o sin_n without_o the_o strength_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n neither_o can_v we_o get_v out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n without_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n in_o christ_n such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o our_o
david_n delight_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n because_o he_o find_v great_a sweetness_n in_o it_o 163._o it_o psal_n 119._o 163._o how_o sweet_a say_v he_o be_v thy_o word_n unto_o my_o taste_n yea_o sweet_a than_o honey_n to_o my_o mouth_n if_o we_o have_v david_n spiritual_a palate_n 13._o palate_n isa_n 58._o 13._o we_o shall_v delight_v in_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n we_o shall_v delight_v to_o hear_v his_o word_n to_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n to_o meditate_v on_o his_o law_n and_o to_o practice_v all_o holy_a duty_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n also_o if_o we_o do_v set_v ourselves_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o sufficient_a power_n against_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n hope_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v weak_a patience_n will_v make_v we_o bear_v our_o affliction_n and_o trial_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n holy_a zeal_n will_v make_v our_o prayer_n effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o grant_v what_o we_o desire_v or_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o and_o constancy_n will_v make_v we_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n unto_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v that_o recompense_n of_o reward_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n have_v promise_v as_o faith_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n so_o it_o will_v always_o go_v along_o with_o every_o particular_a grace_n to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a to_o help_v we_o in_o time_n of_o need_n now_o we_o know_v the_o quickness_n of_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n by_o our_o delight_n in_o holy_a duty_n and_o in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o we_o may_v know_v the_o strength_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o every_o particular_a grace_n also_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v appear_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n if_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n go_v along_o with_o it_o how_o to_o increase_v faith_n every_o man_n have_v not_o alike_o measure_v of_o faith_n he_o that_o i●_n weak_a in_o faith_n may_v be_v make_v strong_a and_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n may_v yet_o have_v more_o for_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n which_o will_v grow_v and_o increase_v if_o it_o be_v spiritual_o water_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christ_n do_v find_v a_o great_a faith_n in_o the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n and_o in_o some_o other_o 28._o other_o mat._n 15._o 28._o o_o woman_n say_v he_o to_o she_o great_a be_v thy_o faith_n but_o he_o do_v often_o reprove_v his_o disciple_n for_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v in_o particular_a unto_o peter_n 31_o peter_n mat._n 14._o 31_o o_o thou_o of_o little_a faith_n wherefoer_n do_v thou_o doubt_v peter_n doubt_v make_v he_o ready_a to_o sink_v as_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n unto_o christ_n and_o it_o do_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o give_v he_o power_n to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n as_o he_o do_v this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n that_o when_o they_o see_v peril_n and_o danger_n ready_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o no_o mean_n either_o to_o escape_v they_o or_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o they_o then_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v rise_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o make_v they_o distrust_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o doubt_v of_o his_o fatherly_a care_n of_o they_o and_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n to_o save_v they_o for_o sometime_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o it_o can_v mount_v above_o their_o humane_a capacity_n &_o they_o can_v see_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o understanding_n when_o god_n see_v such_o weakness_n in_o our_o faith_n he_o will_v tender_o visit_v we_o and_o will_v give_v we_o hope_v by_o some_o manifest_a sign_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o our_o fear_n and_o doubt_n though_o our_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o if_o it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v save_v it_o be_v grow_v and_o it_o be_v last_v faith_n be_v save_v because_o it_o do_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n who_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o by_o who_o only_o we_o must_v be_v save_v 12._o save_v act._n 4._o 11_o 12._o christ_n be_v that_o stone_n which_o be_v set_v at_o nought_o of_o the_o bvilder_n which_o be_v bec●me_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v also_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o faith_n first_o 2._o first_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 2._o if_o we_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o breast_n that_o we_o may_v thereby_o grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o preach_v without_o the_o mixture_n of_o erroneous_a doctrine_n it_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n sow_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o minister_n and_o he_o will_v water_v it_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o make_v it_o increase_v and_o fructify_v that_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o grace_n until_o we_o come_v to_o a_o full_a stature_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v hear_v i●_n with_o sanctify_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n second_o we_o may_v great_o increase_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n which_o be_v the_o true_a food_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o heavenly_a nourishment_n of_o that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o often_o we_o do_v thus_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n the_o more_o we_o cherish_v this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o the_o more_o we_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o make_v all_o other_o save_v grace_n the_o strong_a in_o we_o three_o prayer_n be_v a_o special_a mean_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o we_o have_v the_o beginning_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o it_o also_o and_o the_o establishment_n of_o it_o be_v from_o god_n and_o we_o must_v beg_v it_o of_o he_o by_o our_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n or_o else_o we_o can_v obtain_v it_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n unto_o christ_n 5._o christ_n lu._n 17._o 5._o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n also_o thus_o say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o dumb_a child_n unto_o christ_n 24_o christ_n mar._n 9_o 24_o lord_n i_o believe_v help_v thou_o my_o unbelief_n god_n be_v ready_a to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n but_o special_o when_o they_o make_v such_o petition_n as_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o grant_v which_o be_v such_o as_o do_v make_v most_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o nothing_o can_v advance_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n more_o than_o when_o they_o crave_v the_o increase_n of_o their_o faith_n without_o which_o they_o can_v glorify_v god_n in_o no_o service_n which_o they_o perform_v unto_o he_o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o honour_v he_o in_o any_o holy_a duty_n which_o he_o command_v four_o faith_n will_v grow_v and_o increase_v by_o our_o daily_a meditation_n on_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n how_o faithful_o he_o have_v perform_v all_o his_o promise_n how_o ready_a and_o how_o able_a he_o be_v still_o to_o perform_v they_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v immutable_a and_o omnipotent_a in_o his_o own_o essence_n that_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o that_o he_o will_v not_o alter_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n and_o that_o he_o will_v perform_v all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o his_o word_n it_o will_v great_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o uphold_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n when_o any_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n press_v hard_a upon_o we_o which_o otherwise_o will_v shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n five_o the_o daily_a experience_n which_o we_o have_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n whether_o we_o be_v in_o prosperity_n or_o in_o adversity_n in_o health_n or_o in_o
the_o lord_n know_v they_o that_o be_v he_o the_o second_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o virtue_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n a_o covenant_n between_o man_n and_o man_n be_v a_o engagement_n of_o great_a force_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v always_o exact_o keep_v it_o how_o strong_a then_o be_v that_o covenant_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v make_v with_o we_o which_o his_o own_o dear_a son_n have_v seal_v with_o his_o blood_n and_o which_o god_n have_v make_v of_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n and_o favour_n to_o we_o poor_a miserable_a sinner_n which_o christ_n have_v procure_v for_o we_o 9_o we_o g●●_n 9_o god_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o noah_n and_o he_o have_v keep_v it_o to_o this_o day_n also_o god_n make_v diverse_a covenant_n with_o abraham_n and_o he_o perform_v they_o all_o 21_o all_o gen._n 21_o abraham_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o abimelech_n and_o do_v precise_o keep_v it_o this_o new_a covenant_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o it_o be_v so_o strong_o confirm_v that_o we_o can_v question_v the_o performance_n of_o it_o on_o god_n part_n who_o in_o his_o own_o esence_n be_v immutable_a and_o unchangeable_a and_o though_o we_o can_v perform_v our_o condition_n to_o god_n yet_o christ_n have_v perform_v they_o for_o we_o and_o will_v also_o establish_v we_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v never_o depart_v from_o he_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n 34._o prophet_n jer._n 33_o 34._o i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o inward_a part_n and_o write_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o they_o shall_v teach_v no_o more_o every_o man_n his_o neighbour_n and_o every_o man_n his_o brother_n say_v know_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o shall_v all_o know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o of_o they_o even_o unto_o the_o great_a of_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n for_o i_o will_v forgive_v their_o iniquity_n and_o will_v remember_v their_o sin_n no_o more_o and_o again_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 40_o lord_n jer._n 32._o 40_o and_o i_o will_v make_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n with_o they_o that_o i_o will_v not_o turn_v away_o from_o they_o to_o do_v they_o good_a but_o i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o wherefore_o see_v we_o have_v this_o covenant_n of_o grace_n from_o god_n and_o thus_o confirm_v with_o the_o seal_n of_o christ_n blood_n we_o may_v rest_v confident_a that_o if_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n we_o be_v then_o invest_v into_o this_o new_a covenant_n and_o every_o condition_n and_o promise_n therein_o contain_v shall_v be_v perform_v to_o the_o uttermost_a which_o do_v give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o shall_v never_o total_o and_o final_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n the_o three_o reason_n for_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v ground_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o god_n for_o as_o peter_n say_v 5._o say_v 1_o pet._n 1._o 5._o we_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n the_o lord_n jehovah_n be_v our_o keeper_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o defence_n all_o power_n be_v from_o he_o and_o no_o create_a power_n can_v take_v we_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n christ_n be_v also_o our_o good_a shepherd_n and_o we_o be_v his_o sheep_n though_o we_o go_v astray_o and_o wander_v out_o of_o the_o way_n in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o this_o world_n yet_o christ_n will_v not_o loose_v we_o but_o will_v see●_n we_o up_o and_o bring_v we_o again_o unto_o his_o fold_n 29._o fold_n john_n 10._o 28_o 29._o christ_n know_v his_o sheep_n and_o will_v give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n and_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v neither_o shall_v any_o man_n pluck_v th●m_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n my_o father_n say_v he_o which_o give_v they_o i_o be_v great_a than_o all_o and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n wherefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o confidence_n to_o be_v put_v in_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n if_o any_o trust_n in_o the_o care_n of_o christ_n over_o his_o flock_n or_o any_o truth_n in_o his_o promise_n to_o his_o sheep_n we_o need_v not_o doubt_v of_o our_o perseverance_n in_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v the_o malice_n the_o cunning_a or_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o he_o can_v overthrow_v our_o faith_n or_o destroy_v the_o habit_n of_o it_o that_o be_v plant_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n four_o the_o stability_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v firm_o ground_v upon_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 24._o paul_n 1_o thess_n 5._o 23_o 24._o and_o the_o very_a god_n of_o peace_n sanctify_v you_o whole_o and_o i_o pray_v god_n your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v preserve_v blameless_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n faithful_a be_v he_o that_o call_v you_o who_o also_o will_v do_v it_o also_o thus_o he_o say_v 9_o say_v 1_o cor._n 1._o 8_o 9_o god_n shall_v also_o confirm_v you_o unto_o the_o end_n that_o you_o may_v he_o blameless_a in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n god_n be_v faithful_a by_o who_o you_o be_v call_v unto_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n thus_o say_v moses_n to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 9_o israel_n deut_n 7._o 9_o know_v therefore_o that_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n he_o be_v god_n the_o faithful_a god_n which_o keep_v covenant_n and_o mercy_n with_o they_o that_o love_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n to_o a_o thousand_o generation_n holy_a david_n have_v great_a experience_n of_o god_n faithfulness_n to_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v 5._o say_v psal_n 36_o 5._o that_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n reach_v to_o the_o cloud_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 90._o say_v psal_n 119._o 90._o thy_o faithfulness_n be_v unto_o all_o generation_n thou_o have_v establish_v the_o earth_n and_o it_o abide_v we_o may_v therefore_o rest_v upon_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o his_o power_n for_o the_o keep_n of_o his_o covenant_n for_o the_o perform_n of_o his_o promise_n for_o his_o aid_n and_o assist_a grace_n in_o all_o our_o temptation_n 13._o temptation_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 13._o for_o god_n be_v faithful_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o we_o be_v able_a but_o will_v with_o the_o temptation_n also_o make_v away_o to_o escape_v that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o also_o in_o all_o our_o affliction_n misery_n and_o calamity_n that_o we_o suffer_v in_o a_o good_a cause_n god_n will_v keep_v and_o preserve_v our_o soul_n from_o hurt_n and_o therefore_o thus_o say_v peter_n 19_o peter_n 1_o pet_n 4._o 19_o let_v th●m_n that_o suffer_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n commit_v the_o keep_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o he_o in_o well-doing_n as_o unto_o a_o faithful_a creator_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n unto_o his_o people_n 20._o people_n hos_fw-la 2._o 19_o 20._o i_o will_v betrothe_v thou_o unto_o i_o forever_o yea_o i_o will_v betrothe_v thou_o unto_o i_o in_o righteousness_n and_o in_o judgement_n and_o in_o love_a kindness_n and_o in_o mercy_n i_o will_v even_o betrothe_v thou_o unto_o i_o in_o faithfulness_n and_o thou_o shall_v know_v the_o lord_n if_o we_o be_v thus_o betroth_v unto_o god_n in_o faithfulness_n in_o judgement_n and_o in_o righteousness_n than_o we_o can_v be_v quite_o separate_v from_o he_o and_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o our_o betrthe_v can_v be_v quite_o lose_v the_o five_o reason_n why_o the_o faithful_a can_v final_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n be_v take_v from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n ●_o god_n john_n 13._o ●_o for_o those_o who_o he_o love_v god_n love_v to_o the_o end_n love_n be_v essential_a in_o god_n and_o he_o can_v as_o well_o deny_v his_o own_o be_v as_o deny_v his_o love_n to_o those_o that_o be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o his_o love_n to_o they_o endure_v for_o ever_o 39_o ever_o rom._n 8_o 39_o for_o nothing_o can_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n thus_o say_v john_n the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o christ_n 16._o christ_n 1_o john_n 4._o 10_o 16._o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n again_o he_o say_v thus_o and_o we_o have_v know_v and_o believe_v the_o love_n that_o god_n have_v to_o we_o god_n be_v love_n and_o he_o